#we like not being able to walk straight
Explore tagged Tumblr posts
Text
You shouldnât tease Ari. Especially not with a pair of your worn (re: ruined) panties.
And you most certainly shouldnât do it when heâs busy and canât do anything about it.
Youâve been warned.
Coming soonâŠ
#cevansbrat0007 asks#You tease this man at your own risk#the definition of fuck around and find out#we like not being able to walk straight#cevansbrat0007 sweet renegade series#chris evans imagines#chris evans x black!reader#chris evans smut#chris evans x reader#chris evans x woc!reader#chris evans fanfiction#chris evans x you#ari levinson x black!reader#ari levinson x reader#ari levinson smut#ari levinson fanfiction#Ari levinson x woc!reader#ari levinson x you#ari levinson imagines#Chris Evans x curvy!reader#Ari levinson x curvy!reader
72 notes
·
View notes
Text
just a thought
It's come to my attention of an amazing thing.
That even tho I have only been apart of the dragon age games Fandom for about a year.
That fact that all of us agree that varric should have been made on of the romances you could have picked makes me very happy.
This is also the reason why I refuse to allow my Hawke to fall in love with the other choices. He has his favorite dwarf and that's my final decision on the topic.
#hawke x varric#da2#dragon age#varric tethras#da2 hawke#just being honest#But like the fact that all of us agree on this fact makes me giggle and scream at the same time#Like did Bioware not notice the Varric love?#Or did they and were like#NAH we will just let Varric be the way his is#It's the same thing with making Cullen straight in dragon age inquisition#Like got nothing wrong with that BUT#Am I the only one who thought Cullen had a lot of bisexuality energy?#Cause if so I will gladly emit my fault and walk away#I just got to emit making a male character and not being able to seduce Cullen or even Varric at all was sad#WELP I got Dorian
14 notes
·
View notes
Text
g o o d n i g h t .
#very incoherent rant about my week in the tags; sorry for incoherence i hit my head earlier so b s#im just. so d o n e with this week. 100000% done i say.#on monday i was late to work by 20 minutes and had to stay behind for half an hour to make up for it bc the app we use to clock in suuuucks#and i also found out that i lost $40 of my salary bc of said clocking in app which. suuuuuuuuuuucks#though. this week had a weirdly low number of samples. which was. kinda nice ig since i managed to finish all my work before 7pm⊠but still.#like we managed to finish our stuff so quickly that we managed to watch bee movie together on tuesdayâŠâŠâŠ#mmmmmm i donât remember much about what happened on wednesday thoughâŠ..#but yesterday. oh g o d . yesterday. thursday. whateverday. g o d.#so the software to operate one of the [lab equipment] machines kept crashing everytime we tried to print results#regardless of whether there were any samples being tested with said machine at the moment. which. yâknow#sucks on its own. but it also means that the tested sample had to be reweighed and every sample that came after it had to be reentered again#which was a m a j o r pain in the behind.#so like. after i reran the sample post-first software crash⊠the bossâs favourite employee freakinâ remote-accessed the computer and#he did the results thing. and crashed the software. while a sample was being analysed. and the entire monitor!!! went!!!! dark!!!! when he!!#so. i âcalmlyâ and ârationallyâ rushed out to the office area to give him a piece of my mind.#which. may or may not have involved screaming at him and slapping him. itâs too bad that i slapped him so loudly that our boss heard/saw itâŠ#but. um. she didnât call me out to screech at me in return. she sent him into the lab area to settle his thing himself in fact. so. hm.#i guess iâm able to keep my job for another week. maybe.#it didnât stop my coworkers from making fun of me for slapping the guy though so b s#anyways ig i got my just desserts today bc i walked straight into the side of the door of an in-workplace bathroom stall at full force#and i think i bruised the side of my head⊠what goes around comes around igâŠâŠ#idek what iâm even typing anymore i blame my head hurty for this#inedible blubbering
5 notes
·
View notes
Text
she's singing in another room and my dog is asleep at my feet. my grandma asked me why i haven't found a man yet and i laughed. oh, you know. i like my house clean.
my girlfriend is also my man is also "my partner" if i'm in a professional setting. yesterday we went to a ren faire and a man mimed at me - you're together? and at my delighted nod, his baffled, you're gay? made me laugh. a woman with rainbow hair said i love the two of you together. you're both so beautiful it's absurd.
my dad introduced my partner as my "..... friend. or whatever" the other day. he knows we're dating. in the same way, i was never able to get my sister's husband to stop saying that's gay like it's 2008. he still uses the word fa***t, and my sister's defense of him has always been well, he's just kidding.
my lover and i dance to old music in a tiny kitchen. we judge new music together and take food critique very seriously. we watch love is blind before we fall asleep and agree that if they had a queer season, it would be bloody but also make for excellent tv. of fucking course queer people would know someone for only 2 weeks and agree to get married. what are you saying.
at a bar with friends, a man puts his hand on my wrist. got a boyfriend? and yes, i do have a boyfriend, she's amazing. i am texting her while i wander around a gas station named after geese. i am visiting a swing state for a wedding. in the candy aisle i overhear: she's actually like a lesbian it's disgusting. two teenage girls with packaged sandwiches in their hands, giggling. no literally, like. i'm not, like. okay with her being there while we're all, like, naked and changing.
my girlfriend and i tailgate, drink gin and cider out of cups. from the frat group beside us, a man corrects himself with one of his friends: bro, i mean, nonbinary entity, and it makes everyone around him laugh, myself included. he razzes his friend the same way i would have killed for at 19 years old - like nothing happened, he continues: you apply sunscreen like an alien. he does a little sassy (and fairly accurate) dance interpretation of the motion. his friend is laughing so hard they're crying.
i am lucky, i live in a safe neighborhood in a safe state. my masc passenger princess comes up from DC. i drive her for an hour to where all the leaves are a violent arrangement of color. we walk along the trails, letting autumn into our blood. in this part of the state, there's a lot of pickup trucks and trump signs. when we chastely kiss before getting into the car, i accidentally make eye contact with a woman holding her child's wrist. she looks disgusted. she looks fucking pissed.
two hours later my girl and i are eating dinner on a patio, soaking in the last warmth of new england sun before the chill of winter sets in. we are giggling and trying to talk through plastic vampire teeth. at another table, i see a young woman sit up straighter. i watch her watch us. she blushes and takes her partner's hand from across the table. shy, like the taste of evening has just become something deeper.
it's worth it for this moment, i think. my lover is still humming the same song she's been singing for four days straight and i don't want to kill her for it. her guitar is beside my bed. her toothbrush is in my bathroom. in a few moments i will make us lunch. we are lucky enough to have found each other. it is lucky enough to be in love.
#writeblr#wlw#i often think about like.....#being happy in a gay relationship is sometimes so odd#bc u can forget how stupid ppl are.#bc ur so USED to being gay. and u forget other people GENUINELY ARE homophobic#so it's like. girl pardon?????#but also there are moments where it's like. ohhh the kids are alright#like watching someone razz someone else.... so fucking wholesome#âlemme get this bitche's pronouns before i make gentle fun of themâ .... i would have KILLED for that.#THAT is how u know ur accepted#not just tolerated#..... when ppl are like. sure ur nonbinary congrats but WHAT is this fucking sunscreen application#ps idk if "razz'' is a real word but someone asked what it means -#i've always heard it as being a term for 'gentle & friendly teasing'' which like#i personally notice more from my guy friends but is like - when a person isn't#LIKE ACTUALLY teasing u (it's nothing personal/mean) they're just laughing w/you about something#my friends often put on a little voice and call me an anemic little bitch#like 'ooooo the anemic little bitch is cold??? does she need a mouse blanket#bc she's SOOOO SMALL AND ANEMIC???''#and it doesn't hurt my feelings (it makes me laugh very hard) bc 1. i actually called MYSELF that first#and 2. i'm not sensitive about it!!!#a proper razz is when you are ALSO in on the joke - i ALSO think it's funny#for some people i personally find that when they razz u it's when they love u -#they've noticed something genuine about u and love u enough that u know they're not being mean#this is cultural and personality based of course but i'm hispanic#if someone isn't making fun of me it means they hate me . obviously.
17K notes
·
View notes
Text
This may be the depression speaking + the earliest trauma I've ever gone thru (completely accidental as well), but I think it's kinda pointless to give me gifts. I have clothes that still fit me and are in excellent condition. I have shoes. I have a sizeable movie collection (that tbf I can always add to), and all the books I'd want. I don't paint anymore so it's useless giving me art supplies. And unfortunately even giving me money is hilariously pointless bcus I'm not even gonna spend it on anything, I'm just gonna put it into my savings account and keep living day by day as I do: doing nothing...interesting
#post#how am I this lifeless at fucking 25 dude. holy shit#vent#personal#my hobbies are watching movies. then writing fic. this if I can even squeeze it in between my classes#(sighs) I'd told my mom at the beginning of the semester that I won't be able to go out anymore#she didn't believe me#she's always desperate to get me to go outside to some event or the other n I'd rather just not go bcus well! I don't have any friends#either so it's like. it's just the 2 of us#I like hanging out w her but man walking around n seeing everything doesn't take as long as you'd think#man this is so sad. and pathetic. I should just straight up die#that's another thing today we went to costco n I went to see if this math book I saw like a week or 2 ago was still there n it's not#I wasn't able to find it online either n it sent me into such a pit of despair that like. wow this sucks#I want so many things!!! and I don't ask for any of them bcus; going to my first point!!!; what'd be the fucking point!!!#the hilarious accidental trauma was that I was 2 and wanted a horse book n threw a tantrum about it#n then my mom took me home n sternly yet calmly explained how she couldn't get it for me n would be able to get it at another time#the thing is is that no one around me wants to acknowledge that I'm autistic so this event resulted in me taking it dead serious literally#and my 2 yr old brain understood it to mean 'never ask for anything ever anymore'#I've never thrown a tantrum since but I HAVE swallowed up and repressed every single desire I've had for material things#hmmm is that why I tend to choose experiences sometimes. like trips n stuff. bcus it's not an actual physical thing#was just thinking earlier how my future therapist might find me annoying in that half the work is done in that I keep learning things about#myself a little Too Well#the only therapist I've had up until now was a lady at my uni campus who could only see me for 2 months until she moved to another uni#n she told me. 'your problem is that you're too logical. you're too aware of yourself. you need to allow yourself to feel something'#like!!! don't I know that all too well!!!#hmm is that ALSO perhaps why I'm having more visible meltdowns?#then again I hate crying in front of my parents. it feels like I'm just. man we always joke about me being a spoiled brat bcus I'm an only#child but maaaaaaaaan. it always feels like I never appreciate things n that they Know this n I'm constantly never living up to my#high potential. bcus I'm so spoilt n everything n beneath me somehow#idk man. one day I'll just tell my therapist to follow me on tumblr n analyze me via my tags
1 note
·
View note
Text
Milk and Water Pt. II
pairings: doppelgÀnger!Milkman x fem!Reader
summary: the aftermath of letting him in
pt.I
(art credits: @yunonoaii)
warnings: 18+ content
ââŠwhat. the. fuck.â You mutter to yourself, watching the scene before you unfold.
âmmm, how about letting me in now? promise i wonât bite you too hardâ His eyes were dangerously seductive.
Your desktop fan and the slight rustling sound of (what you could only assume was) him touching himself filled the eerie silence of your office space.
However, he could still tell that you were hesitant to let him in, especially considering what he just did to D.D.D.
âhow about this, sweetheart we-â
âif i open this door.â You cut him off. He shuts up quickly and halts his movements with a blank stare. His eyes watching you intently.
âyou come straight to me, or else i swear to fuck. it will not be a good time for you. you copy?â Your hands were firmly grasping the edge of the desk as you stared the man in his color changing eyes.
âi promiseâ He kisses the window and you give him one last short lived glare before unlocking the door for him.
BZZT!
He slowly turns away from you and walks toward the door and you felt relieved to hear a light knock a few seconds later before he let himself in.
âsee? you can trust the milkmanâ He grins.
He was a mess. Between the torn clothing, the blood, and his unzipped slacks that displayed his black briefs holding back a huge bulge, he honestly looked like something out of a wet dream.
âthis is quite a small space⊠you think iâll be alright in here?â He closed the door behind himself and strides toward you.
âyou donât have any choice but to be alrightâ You retort and he chortles.
âi love this mouth of yours⊠iâve never crossed paths with a human as bold as youâŠâ He tilts his head, placing a hand under your chin to lift it a bit.
âunless youâre actually scared⊠and using this boldness as a tactic..?â His irises turn white once again and his grip on your chin tightened slightly.
Though you were enduring a near death experience right now, being that you were this close to a doppelgÀnger, you were unbelievably horny.
âtactics?â You start. You already knew that you probably wouldnât be able to get out of his grip just by moving, so you used a more⊠inappropriate approach.
You took a step closer to him, closing in the 2 foot gap that sat between the two of you and you placed your palm over his hard-on.
His grip immediately loosened a bit and his fingers twitched against your skin. What a reaction that wasâŠ
You feel more confident, realizing that heâs just another horny good looking guy. âis there a reason i should be afraid of you?â You ask, hand squeezing around him and a finger rubbing his tip.
He shudders and his hand falls from your chin and rests around your throat. His forehead tapped against yours, and your eyes were fixed on each other. ââŠyou really are somethingâ
âwish i could say the same for youâ You start, breaking the eye contact to look at his lips and sharp canines. âyouâre just a slutty and messy excuse of a monsterâ Your words would probably be venom to anyone else, but this only riled him up more.
You felt his throbbing under your palm and grin to yourself before being greedily pulled into a kiss. For a brief moment, you could taste a metallic bloody taste on his tongue.
You moaned at the warmth of his mouth and felt his hands rested on your hips, rubbing circles into the area.
You release yourself from the kiss with his bottom lip between your teeth and a smile. âdesperate, are we?â You tease.
âpainfullyâŠâ His eyes glistened. âwhatâll it take to get those pretty lips to go a little lower?â
âshow me what yours can do first and iâll see about returning the favorâ You challenge. His eyes go back and forth between yours before he kisses you again.
This time however, he started to undo your uniform. Groaning so deeply that you felt the rumble in your throat. His skilled hands loosened your belt and your slacks came down and off.
Next he lowered himself and lifted you a bit to get off your socks and shoes, making him get more sloppy and needy within the kiss.
At this point he was squatting and you were standing over him, holding both sides of his face. His hands travelled up and down your leg as he stayed in his position and this time, heâs the one to break the kiss.
You were both breathing heavily, and staring each other down. You almost forgot your resolve and let him fuck you right then and there.
But you had to stay strong, for both of you guysâ sake. You take a deep breath in and til your head.
âwell, you gonna show me? or are just sit there and look delirious from a simple kiss?â You teased.
ââŠmay i?â He asks with a slightly raised eyebrow, gesturing toward your leg.
âgo aheadâ
âhold on to something rightâ
âwhy am i h- shit!â You wouldâve fell right to the ground if it wasnât for the shelf behind you that held last months documents. Albeit, theyâre scattered over the floor now.
Your legs were snatched from underneath you and each one was hooked over the manâs shoulders. His warm breath against you felt sinister. It sent a slight chill up your spine.
His eyes stared down at your sex and he licked his lips, looking more excited than you did for this. âdonât let goâ He says before using gis fingers to spread you sticky lips.
His tongue pressed hard into you and drug from your hole, up to your clit. You bit your lip at the warmth and felt your back arch against your will.
âha~ this all you got? Thought you said youâd be bet- anghh~!â Your eyes widen and your mouth drops at the new feeling below.
âyou were saying?â He mumbles into you. His tongue was longer with a pointy tip, and his lips were wrapped tightly around your clit.
The pleasure was almost overwhelming. You could definitely admit that he made you eat your words and replace them with loud endless moans.
As you felt yourself getting closer you began to grind your hips over his face, chasing after your high.
âdonât stopâ You could barely get out the last word before the wave of immense overstimulating pleasure came over you.
You curse and take in a few deep breaths, calming yourself down a bit, and only then did he let your clit go with a âpopâ, making your legs to twitch.
âthat wasnât fairâ You jokingly glare at him, the sweat making your skin shine and chilly from the fan air.
âi told you i was betterâ He wipes his chin with his thumb and licks it clean without breaking the eye contact.
âyou have to be some sort of⊠sex demonâ You shake your head in disbelief.
âmaybe i am?â He lets you tug him closer by his tie and give him another sloppy kiss. The change in size of his tongue being just below too much for you as it explored your mouth.
âwell letâs see how long you can last then⊠hm?â You ask, beginning to leave a trail of light kisses on his next before a harsh bite.
You could feel him shudder and decided to have him sit in your office chair. âlet me borrow this..â You say, undoing his tie while he sat.
You spin the chair around and bring both of his arms to the back and tie them to the chair. When you spin his back around, his had such a mischievous grin that you went ahead and addressed.
âyes, i know you could probably get out of that in a heartbeatâ You start and roll your eyes. He chuckles, amused at your awareness. âbut, will you?â It was your turn to put on the sly grin now. The second he managed to break free from his restraint, would be the moment youâd send him off.
ââŠâ He read your face, bit knowing if he should say something sly or not.
âright, thought soâ You smile and give him a few taps on the cheek.
You kneel between the manâs legs, finally addressing the large and throbbing penis before you.
âgod youâre hard⊠you werenât kidding when you said you needed helpâ You joke, rubbing his wet tip through his boxers with you finger.
He grunted a bit and readjusted himself in his seat. You look up at him before pressing harshly on it with your thumb.
âoh fuck you~â He throws his head back and you giggle.
You reach for the hem of his briefs and tug at them, signaling him to lift his hips. Once heâs exposed, you could really see the girth and length of him.
He was veiny, thick⊠bright pink tip, and god knows how long it was.
You put your hand around the base, it was warm and nearly pulsating. Your pace was moderate, giving him just enough to work with. You knew it was a nice steady pace when his hips slightly jerked up for more friction.
âneedy boy wanting to fuck my hand? this wasnât even the main event you asked for, loveâ You coo, strengthening the grip you had on him by a smidge.
âi canât help that you know how to use those hands of yours so wellâ He remarks, still facing the ceiling.
You pump your fist higher up and use your own skilled tongue to drag along his vein.
â@$?!~â He moaned and immediately looked down at you with a snarl. An almost threatening one telling you that he wanted more.
And were you planning on giving it to him? Absolutely not.
You stare right back at him and smirk, using the same motion and occasionally sucking the pre cum from its leaky pink source.
âiâm gonna cumâ Your eyes welled a bit at the large shaft triggering your gag reflex. But he was close so you would endure the slight pain.
His thrust his hips up a few times and you force your head as far as you could before completely stopping.
âfuck- whyâd you stopâ His voice was almost a whisper and suddenly thick white ropes shot into the air and landed on his thigh.
âoh iâm sorry, iâll keep goingâ You reach for his most sensitive spots, overstimulating him into a nervous laughter as he begged you to stop.
It was fun watching him experience more than he could handle, but all good things come to an end.
He sighs in relief, sweaty, heaving, and dazed.
âcan i be freed now?â He asks.
âsure, why not. looks like youâre done here anywayâ You shrug.
âwhoâs done?â He stands up, simply snapping the tie apart.
âoh⊠youâve still got more in you?â
âim the milkman, i never run outâ He suddenly picks you up and sits on you on the desk. Jesus, these things are strong.
You wrap your hands around your neck, suddenly feeling the arousal for another round yourself.
His hands find your slick entrance, teasing the outside and slipping two cold slender fingers into you.
âmmm!â You mean into the kiss, holding onto his forearm as he fingered you at an inhumane pace. You break away and cat h your breath trying to slow him down a bit.
âi donât want to cum from this, put it inâ You say.
âyes maâamâ He lines himself up without your entrance and slowly pushes himself in with a moan. You could every centimeter of the stretch as he went deeper.
You tapped the back of your head onto the window behind you and felt him kissing on your neck and collarbone.
âfuck youâre bigâ Your voice slightly shook as you stated the obvious.
âand youâre so warm and wet inside, i ashamed to admit that i almost came putting it inâ He chuckled before biting back another groan.
RIIIIING
RIIIIING
You snap your head in the direction of the phone and see D.D.D. calling.
Shit.
âstop, i have to take this.â He halts his thrusts and you grab the phone. âhello?â
âagent numberâ A deep voice says over the phone.
â5 5 8 4 3 7â You state clearly.
âthank you agent (Y/N), weâre calling about a few M.I.A. cleaners? it says in our system that you were the last to call. is everything alright?â
âye-es~â You feel something rubbing your g-spot and look over at Francis. âstop, now.â You mouth silently. He just smirks and speeds up.
âare you sure? you sound like youâre being threatenedâ The man on the phone asks.
âmhm~, im fine sir, just a little shakyâ You put your hand over the phone speaker and look at Francis.
âwhat the fuck is wrong with you??â You ask, interrupting yourself with a few moans.
âjust a little thirsty for some waterâ He thrusts harder, causing him to hit your g-spot, and your clit back to back.
You cover your mouth with your shirt and moan into it, hearing the buzz of a voice on the phone. Honestly you should be scared, they could show any minute, but right now, you could care less.
âim gonna cumâ You whisper, still being mindful of the potential listeners.
âyeah?â He grabs a young and stands straight up, slamming you down into his cock. You let out something just short of a scream into the crook of his neck and find yourself twitching and shaking in his grip.
You heard a splash and felt him fill you up with his seed. You both were a moaning, groaning mess, heavily breathing in place.
â(Y/N), do you copy?âŠâŠ. weâre on our wayâ The phone then hangs up and the low buzzy voice is replaced with a prominent beep.
âyou have to go, theyâre comingâ You lazily try to leave his strong hold with a tired push against his chest.
âbut firstâ He puts you back on the desk where you rest your back against the cold glass window. âa drink..â His tongue grows longer right infont of you, and cleans you from your ankles to your navel, and of course he ran it over the bundle of nerves heâs been abusing all night, making your body jolt.
âyouâre so delicious⊠i wish i could always taste youâ His tongue goes back to its normal size.
âwell iâll get going now⊠iâll be seeing you again soon, love. iâll try not to cause too much trouble next timeâŠâ He gives you a peppery kiss on the nose and leaves.
Well, thatâs one way to end your day shiftâŠ
#ciaoteamo#x reader#imagine#smut#milkman smut#milkman x reader#milk the man#milkman#thats not my neighbor#francis mosses x reader#francis mosses
15K notes
·
View notes
Text
i rlly do not think white global northerners understand how fucking bad the anti sinovac psyop was in context of the philippines and other targeted countries being from the global south, with a history of economic and military intervention and destabilization by the usa specifically.
i live in the philippines and sinovac was the only available vaccine for MONTHS of the pandemic. people were fucking dying and we had no pfizer, no j&j, no astrazeneca, no moderna. sinovac was the ONLY vaccine supply we had. and the supply wasnt even enough for even my small city. we do not have the infrastructure to manufacture our own vaccines and tests. we were entirely reliant on imports from other countries who Did have the capacity to manufacture such things
i got up early for several days straight to go to a pop up walk in vaccination site (were talking there by 7:30am) set up in a fucking public basketball court because it was the only way to get vaccinated, and 3 times i had to go back empty handed so to speak after exposing myself to this massive opportunity for transmission because they fucking ran out of shots and prioritized the elderly and disabled and i didnt have my legal pwd (person with disability) card yet. i had to go to a different barangay (local unit of government) to get my shot MONTHS LATER and only got mine because one of my family was in the local govt and reserved some shots for us.
many filipinos use facebook which is where some of the psyop was conducted because you can use it for free on your phone and it is often where news is disseminated. i know we have that joke about People Believing Anything They See On Facebook but i cannot stress enough that people here get local news from fb the same way you (used to) get news from twitter about shit like localized emergencies and whatnot.
because we are third world, you know that the state of our education system is nothing compared to the states. media and news literacy here is dangerously low and the population is sensitive to mis/disinformation, as can be seen during the 2022 presidential elections where the usa Also interfered lol. i cannot stress enough how much of the population was susceptible to this psyop, especially those in poverty who couldnt afford proper education. hell, even educated people fell for this shit. do you think jhunjhun who didnt finish grade 6 would be able to identify disguised foreign intervention that was in his own language?
we were already recovering from public scrutiny of a different vaccine, a dengue vaccine, which lowered public trust in inoculation. and then the usa goes and does THIS??? i cannot emphasize enough that they are directly responsible for the tens and thousands of unvaccinated covid deaths. they are responsible for my friends having to bury their unvaxxed parents and grandparents at the age of 19. they are responsible for mass death and disability.
but were just a country in the periphery. so who cares about us? our lives are worthless to the usa, which is why they admitted that they did this when they would otherwise "never" to their own population. third worlders arent real people to your government. we are merely statistics and a petri dish for experimentation. so who cares if we die? the real important thing isnt our lives, its that the usa has more control over us than china.
6K notes
·
View notes
Text
update I have been in SUCH a good mood today and I love talking to people <3
#just met a bunch of the other biologists in different years there was a big thing and theyâre so cool#I have had. just a little bit to drink bc there was wine and it was actually GOOD I donât like wine but this stuff was like sweeter#had an actual taste and wasnât just bitter and burny so I. maybe had like three glasses which is not a lot but I am a small man#my friend said I was normal but heâs also an unobservant straight man I know I was a little more than normal#and also definitely less coordinated (I walked into a wall.)#(nobody was watching it was fine)#itâs fine I donât drink very often this is probably what happens. so much for alcohol doesnât affect me very much maybe it depends on what#OH YEAH TOPSY THIS MIGHT BE EVIDENCE FOR THE VODKA BAD THING BC THIS DIDNT GIVE ME A HEADACHE#anyway. it was so fun catching up with some of these people I only see them like a few times a year#but theyâre genuinely some of the nicest people Iâve met in this place#hopefully organising a thing with a few of them soon!! will be cooking for a couple people I might invite cool masters student whom I love#sheâs my favourite biologist hands down I would kill for her#idk man itâs just made me remember how much I genuinely enjoy talking to people and bc itâs not the first time with a lot of them the like#initial icy awkwardness had melted and we could just be normal people and it was great#and like normally talking to people I actually have classes with itâs weird and slightly like. comparing each other feeling yknow?#but tonight the only people I had classes with who I talked to were my actual friends and then a bunch of people in other years#so it was just nice and chill and it was honestly kinda nice being able to be the reassuring older one like a few people were for me before#anyway yeah I understand a bit more abt a) why people drink at these things (the little extra confidence is nice I canât lie)#b) this subject sucks in many ways and a lot of the people are shit here but so many arenât and weâre just all not talking to each other#bc of the much louder incredibly annoying people in between who are much more visible#but when you do end up together itâs rlly nice and I just wish Iâd talked to some of them earlier or like. more.#ms. masters I will miss you so much when youâre gone I will not be able to fill the void you leave next year but I will try o7#also oh god yeah the freshers have personalities now itâs great I knew I just needed to give them some time#I only talked to like. threeee? but theyâre rlly nice and one is coming for dinner soon hopefully I gotta organise that at some point.#maybe next term bc I donât think I have time or the brain space to do extras this term now#but it will be at some point bc I rlly wanna talk to them all again. Iâll have so much more time next term I can do that#anyway. I love talking to people and I rlly like when Iâm in a good mood Iâm gonna try hype myself up more#I think I have a habit of slipping into everything sucks but when Iâm not like that I can enjoy Everything. growth#anyway Iâm sleeping now Iâm so tired early bed goodnight <3#luke.txt
0 notes
Text
Overheard
Summary: Rafe over hears you and Sarah talking about your night at the beach with a hookup.
CW: possessive Rafe, rough sex, name calling, unprotected sex (wrap before tap), bit of choking and hair pulling, forced to stay quiet, mirror sex. (Should be it)
(Did not proofread bc this took me so long already.)
~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~ ~
You and Sarah had been friends for years. You moved to Outer Banks as a child and took quite a liking to Sarah and her family. You were always known to drop in whenever you felt needed. You shared many nights at their house and basically became a part of the family.
On this specific day it was like any other. You hopped in your jeep and quickly sped off to Tannyhill. Soon arriving in the circle driveway of the mansion you quickly got out and headed to the door knocking loud, so you were heard.
The door was swung open by none other than the snarky stuck-up brother of your best friend, Rafe Cameron. âYou donât have to knock.â He sighed âyou basically live here anyway.â He scolded you. You pushed past him and into the entrance way of the house.
âWhereâs Sarah?â Rafe shut the door and then pointed up the stairs to her room. âWhere she always is waiting for you.â You nodded your head at him giving him one last look before making your way up to her room. He watched as you quickly sprinted up the stairs. Watching as your hips moved and how your ass was in perfect view.
He shook his head relieving the thought of you knowing how wrong it was. Soon he made his way up the stairs as well to his own room that was until he heard you talking in a not so quiet voice to his sister.
"I wouldn't say it was awful, just not what I wanted." Sarah cocked a brow to you. "Well, what did you want. I mean you wanted to have sex with him, right? What more could you want. You practically begged me for his number." She chuckled.
"Yes, I did." Rafe moved closer to the crack in the door leaning his ear closer. He listened closely to your words. "What does she mean" he thought to himself.
Yes, Rafe knew you, but he thought he knew you well enough. He never saw you as the type to beg for sex with someone, or much less really want it.
In his head you always were the type to never come off as sexual but definitely not innocent. He truly just thought that in this world full of sex you had no idea what you were doing or had any care for it, and he was so wrong.
"Okay yes I wanted it. Like the party last week, I wanted to just be dragged off with him somewhere because I thought he'd fuck the shit out of me. See that's what I wanted." You crossed your arms and huffed.
"Okay, then what happened that you didn't like? Was it the fact it was on the beach or like what?"
"I guess the best way I could put it is I wanted it to me more filled with lust and desire. I wanted it to be rough and I wanted to not be able to walk today." You chuckled along with Sarah.
"Well how did it go for you?" You sighed trying to think back to last night. "Well, he took me out on the beach, and he had a blanket with him. Talking happens and whatever and I end up straddling his lap."
Sarah nodded her head waiting for you to continue, but Rafe stood out the door as he held his breath. He was pissed. You fucking some other man and he didn't even do it right pissed him off more. But he stayed quiet.
"We made out a bit and I started to grind on him a bit. Obviously, he got a rise up, so I got all cocky and pulled his dick out. After a few moments of me just doing my thing, I pulled my bikini bottoms off and rode him. He was like..." You paused trying to find your words.
"It was like he never wanted it to end and not saying I don't like that, but I asked if he could get on top and we'd go faster he just straight up refused. Which basically dried me up and I didn't even want to do it anymore."
Sarah tried to hold back her laughter. "Hey, it's not funny I'm being dead serious." You smacked her arm but laughed as well.
Rafe was the only one not laughing. Red filled his face with anger, and he scoffed at your words. "Didn't even fuck her the way she wanted. What a pussy." He thought.
"Well maybe you'll find someone who just rocks your world." Sarah smirked. "Yeah, as if." But only if you knew what little plan Rafe had planted into his mind.
~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~
That same day you had planned on staying the night with Sarah. Of course, to everyone in the house it was no surprise. It was now late at night and Sarah was asleep. However, you sat awake in her bed scrolling mindlessly on your phone till a text popped up.
"Come here."
You read the text from Rafe. Confusion spread across your face. You texted back.
"Sarahs asleep. Where are you?"
"My room. Just come here you won't wake her, she's a heavy sleeper."
You sighed and turned off your phone placing it on the nightstand beside you. Slowly you rose up from the bed making your way to the bedroom door making sure to stay as quiet as possible.
You looked back at Sarah one last time before closing the door. You slowly tiptoed your way down the hall to Rafe's room. You raised your hand to the door knocking slow and quiet. Soon Rafe opened up the door nodding his head telling you to come in.
As you walked in you looked around the room that was dimly lit by the small lamp setting you realized you had never seen Rafe's room before. "I have never been in here." You turn back and look at him leaning up against the door. "Cleaner than I thought." You chuckled.
He shrugged. "Don't know why you'd ever think that. I believe I come off as a clean person." He paused. "Unlike you." You looked at him confused for a moment as he stepped closer to you, his rich cologne filled your nostrils.
"I heard you. Talking to my sister earlier today." He walked behind you. "How you wanted to be fucked hard." He leaned in closer to your ear whispering. "How you want it to be filled with lust and desire."
His words sent chills down your spine and your own words choked up. "So, fucking dirty and here I was thinking you didn't care about these things." His hands slowly made their way to your hips giving a slight squeez.
"Rafe..." You spoke barley above a whisper. He smirked against your neck placing a small kiss right below your ear. "Is that what you want? To be fucked like the whore you are?"
Your legs squeez together trying to release some of the tension that was building up. You let out a shaky breath as one of his hands trail down to the waistband of your sleep shorts.
"Is this what you want?" He whispered. You nodded your head squeezing your eyes shut as he played with the waist band. "Words."
"Yes, I want this." He slid his hands down your shorts. Two of his fingers rubbed against your folds. You let out a breath you didn't know you were holding in. He rubbed circles around your clit as your hips moved forward chasing his touch.
You let out a small moan and immediately Rafe slaps his hand onto your mouth. "What you want the whole house to hear? As much as I'd love to hear your pretty little moans you need to keep quiet."
You nodded your head frantically. "Good girl." Rafe then removes his hand from you making you whine at his loss of touch. He stepped back from you grabbing your hand and leading you to the bed. He pushed you down on the bed and you let out a gasp.
He crawled on top of you and basically ripped off your clothes and his throwing them on the floor. Rafe started to kiss your neck earning a small gasp to leave your lips.
"Rafe please..." you whine out. "What do you want?" He smirked against your neck. The words couldn't seem to leave your lips as he left a bite on your sweet spot right below your ear.
"Don't go quiet on me now." He rose up to look at you. "Tell me what you want." You started to bite your lip at the sight of him. The sly smirk planted across his face. His shoulder muscles showing more featured as he held himself up.
"Fuck me Rafe...." As soon as the words slipped from your lips it felt like sweet honey on his tongue. He spread your legs open, and you wrapped them around his waist trying to pull him in.
"So needy?" He chuckled making you want him even more. "Rafe..." You breathed out. "Words sweetheart." He smirked once again. "Rafe please fuck me." Your wish was his command.
He lined himself up to you and without warning slammed into you making you let out a loud cry. He quickly slapped his hand over your mouth. "Shut the fuck up." He groaned out.
Your eyes rolled into the back of your head as he thrusted into your cunt hard and fast. "You feel so fucking good. Holy shit." His words were breathless as if he blurted them out of pure pleasure.
His hand still planted on your mouth as the other held your waist tightly. You threw your head back at all the new pleasure rising in you. Rafe looked down at you smirking at the absolute complete mess you were in this moment.
"You like how I fuck you. I bet that pussy boy could never be like this with you." You moaned against his hand as the words leaped off his tongue.
As Rafe pounded into you harder and faster the headboard started to move. He let go of your waist grabbing the board holding himself up as he stayed covering your mouth. You watched his muscles tensed and sweat glistened on his body.
All the pleasure plus the view of him really added onto you forgetting about your shitty hookup. "Fuck..." He groaned out throwing his head back and closing his eyes.
In an instant Rafe grabbed you off the bed still fucking you and took you into the big bathroom inside his bedroom. He turned you around facing the mirror. "I want you to see that pretty little face when you cum for me. A face you'll never see without me fucking you like this."
He held your mouth again making you look at the beautiful mess you were in the mirror. Him pounding in and out of you. Your breast bouncing. Him making direct eye contact with you through the mirror itself.
Muffed moans and him slapping his thighs against your ass echoed through the tile walls. As you could feel your peak approaching you closed your eyes. "No." In one swift move he wrapped his hands around the back of your hair forcing your eyes open to see yourself.
He smirked as he watched you bite your lip holding back you loud beautiful moans. With a few sloppier thrust Rafe was chasing his own high. Throwing his head back as he pounded into you. "Fuck me." He groaned out.
Your high had reached his peak biting your lip so hard blood started to form. Rafe grabbed you pulling you against your chest holding your neck. "Come on baby." He whispered in your ear making you crash.
Your legs started to shake and the image of you two in the mirror was all too much to handle. Rafe started to come down from his own high. His thrust and movements slowing down as his hot liquid shot inside you.
Rafe turned your head towards his planting a sloppy wet kiss on your lips and he pulled out of you. Rafe pulled away, and you both panted for air more than ever. "That's how you should be fucked." A smirk planted across his lips.
#rafe cameron#rafe fanfiction#rafe imagine#outer banks rafe#rafe x reader#call me a good girl#rafe cameron obx#choking#good slvt#manhandling#mirror#rafe fic#rafe x you#rafe smut#smut#obx smut#imagine#rafe cameron smut#rafe cameron x you#rafe cameron x reader#rafe cameron fanfiction#rafe#drew starkey
3K notes
·
View notes
Text
Baby In Papaya : ÌÌâ Lando Norris
summary: as your son starts to join you in the mclaren paddock, it doesn't take long for him to earn his own piece of papaya too
The noise in the garage quietened as soon as the team watched you walk in, holding onto the hand of your son. Lando stood up straight away, kneeling down with his arms wide open as your son ran through and jumped straight into Landoâs hold.Â
âHi buddy,â Lando grinned, pressing a kiss against his cheek before placing him back on his feet, allowing him to say hello to the other faces around the garage that he knew.Â
Once you had placed your bag down, you made your way over to Lando too, feeling his lips peck against your cheek, his arm snake around your waist. Zak was quick to come and greet you, letting you know just how excited the team were to have you back in the garage again.Â
âAnything you need today, you let us know,â he told you, making sure that you were looked after. Since having your son, it was your first time at a race, and the team were keen to make life as easy for you as they possibly could.Â
After saying hello, your son ran back over to Lando, hiding behind his leg as the noise got louder. With everyone stood in a huddle, Zak reached up onto one of the shelves, pulling down a box and holding it out to you.Â
âWe got a little something for the little man to welcome him to McLaren,â Zak told you.Â
âReally, you guys are adorable,â you grinned, taking the box from Zak.Â
With your sonâs help you lifted the lid off, greeted by a patch of papaya straight away. As you reached in, the material unfolded to reveal a McLaren shirt, a smaller replica of the one that Lando wore around the garage.Â
Your sonâs eyes lit up as he realised that he had been given the same as what Lando wore, bouncing up and down on his feet. âWhat do you say?â You asked him, watching him peer around from behind Lando and thank Zak for the gift he had given him.Â
Soon enough, your son had taken his top off, his arms stretched up in the air. You knew exactly what he wanted, placing the new shirt over his head, pulling it down as it fit perfectly around his little body.Â
No one was more excited than Lando though as he knelt down, standing next to your son. They were almost identical in their matching shirts, exactly what Lando had always dreamt of.Â
âYou look so handsome,â you smiled across at them both.Â
âIâm just like daddy now, arenât I?âÂ
Your head nodded in reply to your son, âhopefully it stops at the shirt, if it extends to driving race cars too, I think might have a breakdown.âÂ
Several chuckles came from around the paddock as the team went back to their jobs, leaving you, Lando and your son sat in one corner of the garage, with Oscar soon inviting himself over to join the three of you too.Â
âWhen you were pregnant Lando used to talk about how he wanted to match with his child,â Oscar informed you, âit was all he talked about.âÂ
âDid he now?â You teased, âfunny how you never told me that.âÂ
Lando shot a glare across at Oscar who had a proud smile on his face, lifting your son and placing him into his lap as he continued to admire his shirt.Â
âI was thinking we could head out on a paddock tour in a bit,â Lando spoke, wanting to make sure that his son got the full experience of the garage, even if he was a little too young to be able to take it all in.Â
âWill it be safe enough to take him around?â You quizzed, a little more doubtful than Lando was. âItâs busy out there, especially with all the car parts being moved around too.âÂ
Lando nodded confidently, not wanting you to worry. âIâll be right there with you guys so you wonât be by yourselves. And if he gets lost, at least everyone will know that he belongs to McLaren now too.âÂ
Your eyes rolled as Lando proudly admired how amazing your son looked in the shirt once again. It had been a long time since youâd seen him so excited, knowing just how long heâd waited to show your son around, you just couldnât say no to him.Â
As he watched your head nod, Landoâs eyes lit up. âThereâs so many people who have been pestering to meet him.âÂ
âIâm trusting you," you warned, poking against Lando's side. You looked across at Oscar who couldnât help but laugh at you both, remembering how much fun it was to have you at the paddock. âThis might be the stupidest decision that Iâve made in my life.âÂ
Oscar cleared his throat from beside you, âIâd argue that your stupidest decision was choosing to sleep with this guy,â he joked, smirking in Landoâs direction. âI mean even after all these years I wonder what it was that you ever saw in Lando.âÂ
âIâm sat right here,â Lando reminded you, speaking as if he was invisible. âAnd obviously she saw how devilishly handsome I was, otherwise we wouldnât have our little papaya baby sat here right now.âÂ
He was Landoâs pride and joy, on the edge of his seat with excitement about being able to introduce him to everyone. Before you knew it, he was up and holding onto your son to carry him round, hurrying you up so that he could take you around with him.Â
As Lando began to walk, you hung back, with Oscar deciding to join you too. âDo you have any idea how excited heâs been to do this?â He asked you.Â
âI imagine heâs been unbearable,â you laughed.Â
Oscar nodded, never failing to be surprised by how well you knew Lando. âI think everyone has been driven slightly up the wall listening to him this weekend. Heâs told me five times alone that you were coming, just in case I happened to forget.âÂ
Ahead of you, Lando walked with a spring in his step, allowing his son to wave to just about everyone. A few of the other drivers came over, keen to meet the little boy that they had heard so much about. Your son was adorable at the best of times, but dressed in papaya, he had everyone obsessing over him.Â
âI think someoneâs enjoying themselves,â Lando smiled back at you as yet another driver waved goodbye. Lando bounced your son in his hold, making sure that you saw just how big his smile was.Â
âIs it our son, or is it secretly you?â You joked.Â
âIâm having the time of my life,â Lando proudly admitted, unable to contain himself. âI always knew it anyway, but papaya really does suit my boy.âÂ
Your head shook at Landoâs grin, âit was only a matter of time before I ended up losing my son to McLaren, wasnât it?âÂ
âHis whole wardrobe will be papaya soon, Iâll make sure itâs packed out with plenty of merch,â Lando assured you, âand everyone will know that he is daddyâs biggest fan.âÂ
âI remember the days when I was your biggest fan,â you joked, ânow Iâve just been pushed aside like Iâm nothing thanks to our child.âÂ
âDonât worry, thereâs a place for you at number two.âÂ
ËËË đđđđđđđđđđ ! ÂŽËË
#f1#f1 imagine#lando norris imagine#lando norris#formula 1#formula 1 x reader#f1 x reader#formula 1 imagine#formula 1 x you#f1 fanfic#f1 reaction#formula one#lando norris drabble#lando norris x you#lando norris fluff#lando norris x reader#formula one x you#formula x reader#formula 1 drabble#formula one x reader#formula one imagine#formula 1 fic#formula 1 fanfic#f1 drabble#f1 fluff#f1 x you
2K notes
·
View notes
Note
Hello there!! I really love your work! Could I request some older! gf caitlyn with some subtle and soft dominance? Doesnt need to be nsfw [but wonât complain if it is ;))]
It could just be about how she acts with the reader when in public, at home, etc. [i.e: cooking for reader when theyâre busy for exams, putting her hand on readerâs thighs when sitting in public, or big spooning reader when they head to bed.]
Thatâs all. Please remember to stay hydrated and take frequent breaks! Keep being you and donât overwork yourself :)).
â đą
êȘৠHEAVEN, HEAVEN. ft. đŹđȘđČđœđ”đđ· đŽđČđ»đȘđ¶đ¶đȘđ·.
ÊÉ summary. subtle ways your older girlfriend caitlyn shows dominance towards you.
warnings. fem!reader. reader is in college. age gap (10 years or more). no use of y/n. modern au! where cait is an office worker. fluff. in one headcanon there's a mention of curly hair (it's all for inclusivity and bias tbhâcoming from a girl with curly hair). pet names ie: darling, love, baby, ect. smut nsfw. bottom!reader. dom!cait. hair pulling. mommy kink (reader calling cait mommy & cait calling herself mommy). squirting. cait had a bush. reader is a brat kinda. slight exhibition. fingering (r!receiving). orgasm denial. oral (c! receiving). strap (r!receiving). the strap is referred to as cait's cock. not proofread. wc. roughly 2k to 3k
an. thank you for the request, lovie! and i'm happy that you're enjoying my work âșïž i decided to take this request and turn it into a headcanon format so i hope that's okay! you are too cute with your kind words and i hope you are taking care of yourself, drinking lots of water and eating yummy meals <3 i also decided to add some nsfw headcanons đ so i hope you guys enjoy them. and for any of these headcanons i am willing to expand on them if you guys are interest :) remember to support your writers by reblogging & commenting !
m.list. | arcane m.list.
àŁȘ Ë SAFE FOR WORK.
⣠straight away with caitlyn you notice her dominance. even before the two of you started dating and she was courting you, as she'd say when reminiscing with you or her friends on the early stages of you two, she exuded an air around her that's nothing less than confidence, pride, and dominance. she's already tall at 6 foot, but her posture is always upright, her appearance sleek, and she reveled in maintaining eye contact. and before her you usually didn't find people who were overtly dominant attractive, but when it comes to caitlyn it's completely different, natural. it's the way she carry's herself and it rubs off on you.
⣠the first subtle way of cait's dominance you noticed was her ability to make decisions. she's knows what she wants and how she wants it, and that's something you're relieved about, being too indecisive at times. so being able to let caitlyn reign free on decision making was something that gave you peace of mind. and it wasn't that she was a control freak (she kind of is, but that isn't the point), she helps level out the playing field when you're iffy.
"what would you like to eat for lunch, darling? my treat." she ask, clicking on her keys to unlock her car, taking the bag from off you shoulders to hold it in her hand.
"hm," breaking away from cait to walk around her car to the passenger seat, just before your slide in. "i don't really know." you cringe, you couldn't even count on your fingers how many times you've said this phrase in your relationship so far.
you hear caitlyn hum and the sound of her swinging open the back seat door and the shuffle of her setting your bag in the backseat before you enter your seat. she joins you in the driver's seat, clicking in her seat belt, her gaze settling upon you scrolling away on your phone. "would you like to eat out somewhere or pick up fast food and we can take it back to my place?"
your head darts up to look at your girlfriend, lips twisting up, thinking about your options. "i want something good."
that's earns a chuckle from cait, "i know that silly," her hand coming up to boop you on your noise, which caused you to scrunch it and giggle, swatting her hand away. "but what is exactly good?" she presses.
"well what do you think is good?"
"that wasn't the question."
you grumble, "you're so difficult."
"says you." she teases.
"'m always the one who picks. what would you like." you ask turning in your seat towards her as best as you can.
"i'm fine with whatever you'd like. you know that."
biting your lip you think about the choices she gave you earlier. "i think we should go back to your place."
"that's a start. do you have a taste for anything."
"i already answered that."
"darling." she sing songs in a tone similar to a warning.
she starts the engine, finally, and you immediately connect to the bluetooth.
"y'know we haven't had chinese in awhile." she proses, eyeing your expression from the corner of her eye.
"oh, that sounds really good actually."
cait perks up in the drivers seat, "you're usual?"
"yep!"
"alright," she stretches forward to twist the volume nob lower. "i'm going to call it in and we'll pick it up on the way home."
⣠cait also does the general dominate things; like opening up doors of any kind for you when she can, interlocking your fingers when the two of you walk together, walking slightly in front of you at all times as well as guiding you. you secretly love it though when instead of guiding you through a crowd by being in front of you, you love it when she does it by standing behind you, a hand or both hands securely on your hips as she leads you forward from behind. she's also a firm believer of switching places when walking, on the street and you're near the road? she's switching with you. in the parking lot and your facing the intersections? she's using her hand on your lower back to guide you to be the closest near the parked cars.
⣠she will also never let her girl look out of place, so she fixes anything that is "off" with your appearance. like fixing a certain stand of hair, taking that fallen eyelash off of your cheek and raising her finger with the piece of your fine hair on it in front of your lips so you could wish and blow it away, fixing your jacket so it's straight or the neckline of your shirt or dress, the straps of your bra will never be showing when you're wearing thin strapped items as long as caitlyn's around. holding your little compact mirror while you fix up your makeup or reapply your lipgloss. your necklaces will always be facing the correct way. picking off lint or stray hairs from your clothing. and she somehow always notices when your sneakers are starting to untie before your, pulling you aside so she can get on a knee and pat her propped up knee so you can place your foot there and allow her to tie your shoe, when she's done she pats your foot to let you know and she dust herself off before leaning down to give you a kiss.
⣠when out in public she'll usually always keep one hand on you at all times. in a comforting way for the both of you, especially if the two of you will be around her friends or people her age. she knows you get antsy around them and there's anxiety about being the youngest in a room full of older people. so, there will always be a comforting arm wrapped around your waist or a hand in or lap or on your thigh.
you look around the room, there's people you've met before. caitlyn's friends and a few colleagues, but for the most part a majority of them are new faces. and you can't help but feel like everyone is looking at you.
you've never been insecure about being with caitlyn. yes she's older than you, but it's never stopped you from feeling head over heels for her and that feeling overpowers any doubt or insecurity you could ever have. it's the fact that it seems like you're the youngest in the room, there's nothing inherently bad about that. but everyone here is successful, and you're well. . . a college student working a job that has nothing to do with what you're going to school for.
a warm hand snaps you out of your thoughts. lifting your head, caitlyn's already looking at you with a soft expression. "you're shaking your leg, love."
"oh," looking down at the leg with cait's hand on it, still shaking. you stop it on command, focusing your gaze back on your girlfriend.
"are you okay?" she tilts her head, her eyebrows furrowing and the ponytail her blue hair is in swishes behind her, cute.
you give her a tight smile, nodding your head. "hm." you hope you're convincing enough.
caitlyn takes in a breath, breaking her gaze from you to look around the room. "y'know that woman over there went for the same major as you." she points out.
"really?" observing the woman who's talking with a few of their colleagues before turning your wide gaze back to your girlfriend.
"hm. she doesn't do work with it," she pauses, turning her head back to you with soft eyes. "but, what she does now is something she loves."
her hand smoothing up and your thigh, comforting you. "what i'm trying to say is that don't worry about your path right now being different from others around you." she reassures. reaching out to take a hand from your lap to take it in hers, bringing your hand to her lips and pressing a kiss.
flushing at her gesture, "thank you, cait." your voice small enough for only her to hear in the chatter of the room. your hand stays up near her lips and she presses a few more kisses, causing you to giggle.
"there she is." she muses.
you bring her hand holding yours down down into your lap to clasp her hand in between yours. leaning forward, a few inches from her face.
"kiss?"
caitlyn leans forward to meet your lips, not connecting them just yet. "any thing for my darling." she whispers against your lips.
⣠it was also established pretty early that caitlyn is the big spoon in the relationship. she enjoys and you love it. caitlyn also finds it pretty cute whenever the two of you are laying anywhere whether it's the sofa or in bed that you turn your back to her and keep shifting until she notices your moving form, coming up to wrap herself around your backside. not really big spooning but caitlyn enjoys the feeling and pressure of your laying on top of her, always telling you how it grounds her whenever she pulls you along to the bed and flops you on top of her. but you never complain because you find it comforting too, the side of your head press against her soft chest, focusing on the steady rise and fall of it and the buh dumbs of her heartbeat, you usually fall asleep quickly like this.
⣠older gf!caitlyn knows how draining it is to be in college. you get so focused on your education by sainting grades or completing assignments, not to mention the exams. so, she's always doing her best to help you out and make sure that you keep yourself in check rather that be mentally or physically. during hard times where you have midterms or finals or just back to back exams caitlyn will always tell you to not worry about picking up shifts at your job, she already knows you're overworking yourself by studying and doesn't want you to exhaust yourself further by working long hours. because she knows you and that if you could study then work a shift and study some more afterwards you would, but she knows that isn't healthy for you. so she always reassures you by saying that she'll support you financially for a little bit, transfer sums of money into you bank account for rent, bills, groceries, ect. it gives her peace of mind to know that she able to take a weight off your shoulders and provide for you. cait is also an insanely amazing cook and you always rave about her cooking, so she began taking a day out of her week every week to cook you some premade meals. she always comes stocked and ready on a weekend to your place with her tote full of meals to pile into your fridge. and during exam season it became pretty common for you to send time at hers for a few days. she does it to watch over you to make sure you're not running on fumes, but you like to think of her as a built in study buddy for reviews. during these days cait will come home from work to most likely find you at the dinning table studying, she'll kiss you on your forehead, and she'll head straight to the kitchen to cook dinner. as much as you dread exam season you don't dread spending this time with cait, there's just something so inherently domestic about cait providing for you. coming home and cooking dinner for the both of you, it makes your mind go numb. and it makes her feel successful when at night when she drags you to bed and for her to wake up to begin getting ready for work that you're still in bed soundly sleeping and that you didn't sneak off somewhere to study.
"dinner's ready." caitlyn chims, poking her head into the dinning room where you sit.
you lift your head up from your notes to eye her. sniffing the aroma around you. "chicken alfredo?"
"hm. you said something about craving it last week, so when i went shopping i picked up the ingredients."
"you're so sweet, cait." you hum, watching as she exits back into the kitchen. you prop your elbow up the table to rest your head in your hand, eyes flicking back down to your notes. you needed to understandânoâabsorb this material into your brain for your exam coming up in a few days. listing off multiple curses within your head for taking this course and major and your professor for being a difficult teacher.
there's crinkling of sheets of paper around you. cait's suddenly bending across the table to organize the scattered papers in her hands. "c'mon, love. you can study a little more later."
fixing your gaze back up causing your eyebrows to raise, dumbfounded as you watched her. releasing your head from your hand to reach it out for the papers. "butâ"
"but?" her tone is questioning and harsh. blue eyes narrowing at you.
"just a few more minutes, please, baby. i almost have this down."
you watching her graceful figure walk to the edge of the table where the rest of your materials lie and she places the stack down. she stands tall, placing a hand on her hips. "you can always study some more afterwards," she begins to walk over towards where you sit. "your notes aren't going to miraculously grow legs and run away, love. they'll be here." she assures. you blink and look back down at the notes in front of you, then back up at caitlyn. and for the first time you notice her attire, her hairs in a messy ponytail, still in her work attire but she's discarded her blouse and is only in her under tank top and slacks, she too has has had a long day.
"okay." you agree.
caitlyn smiles, showing off her toothy grin and her front gap you adore. she takes the material in front of you and places it with the rest.
"we're eating at the island. i have a sneaky feeling your cute bum has been sat on that chair all day." she teases.
you stand, bones cracking. your eyes shoot straight to look at cait, the both of you bursting into laughter. the noise proving her suspicions correct.
she sways back towards you, "come before the food gets cold." she muffles out, taming her laughter.
beelining to the kitchen island you sit back down, but now on a high top chair. lifting yourself up by your hands on the counter to eye the dish of chicken alfredo on the other side of the counter.
"looks s'yummy, cait."
"hope it is."
"always is" you correct.
watching as she stands on the other side, empty plate in hand with tongs in the other, dishing up some pasta and chicken.
"good?"
you eye the plate, "hm" you nod.
she heads behind her to the stove where steamed broccoli lies, piling some onto you plate. opening a drawer next to the stove, grabbing a fork and slamming it shut with her hip. she turns around and walks around the island. the clank of the plate landing on the counter, placing the fork down next to it.
"dig in, darling." pressing a kiss into your hair before going to fix her plate.
⣠she takes care of you in softer domestic ways. such as taking off your makeup for you after a long day or a night out with friends. bathing you and carefully washing over you in the shower. washing your hair, even going as far to learn the type of products you use and buying spares for her place so she's always stocked if you happen to spend days at her place and it's a wash day. she even learns how to care for you hair type if you have curly hair, hearing you complain endlessly about the process of washing and styling it, so she'd take it upon herself to observe you and learn so that way she can help and maybe even completely take over the process to give your poor arms a break. a certain domestic thing she does is call her place home. not just her home but your home too. whenever you're spending the night and the two of you out she'll always say "alright, let's head home, love." at the end of it. and it never fails to make your heart skip a beat that she views her space as your guys's collective space. she makes it knows that she's ready for you to move in whenever you feel most comfortable, and the day that you announce that you're ready to live together she is beaming.
àŁȘ Ë NOT SAFE FOR WORK.
⣠a subtle way she asserts dominance is maintaining eye contact with you. she relishes in being able to make you flustered from simple eye contact, watching you get all fidgety and stumble over your words. but it's also her silent cue whenever you're acting out in public. a tilt of her head, dark gaze, heavy lids and a narrowed eyes will usually set you in place.
⣠caitlyn knew a lot about herself before she met you, she kept a list of all things she liked and didn't like, and those things rarely changed. but what she didn't know is that she'd find being called mommy so attractive. she knows she can be assertive and demanding at times, always the one with the plan. she was even deemed the "mom friend" when she was younger, but not once in any of her other relationships had anyone called her mommy. and maybe it's because she's never dated anyone, before you, with a large age gap. but the first time the word escaped between your sweet lips it was when cait had you face down, ass up, drooling into a pillow. fucking you at a particular angle with her cock that caused you to go dumb and roll your eyes to the back of your skull. realization didn't strike you when it muttered out, you were too far gone, but of course caitlyn heard it, she hears everything. her hips stilling. "what was that?" you barely heard her question, only worrying about the fact that she stopped fucking you, pressing your hips back to gain her attention to begin thrusting again. "pleaseâmommy." oh. she liked that.
⣠older gf!caitlyn expects nothing but the best behavior of her sweet darling. she finds it intolerable and disrespectful when you decide to be a brat and act out, and when you take it further and push her past her warnings? she's seething. but two can play that game.
cait lets out a laugh along with her friends. the two of you were where at this restaurant for hours now. you didn't mind your girlfriend's friends, you loved and enjoyed their company. but you didn't expect to be here for this long and it's getting antagonizing having to sit and pretend like your understanding anything any of them are saying, especially when cait looks like that, blue hair flowing down her back, dainty silver jewelry decorating her body, in that black silk dress the one with the modest (you don't think do) slit. you begged her to cancel the moment you saw her, but she persisted, and now you're suffering.
she's even been uptight today, shutting down your sly advances, saying something about acting out and wanting to enjoy a night with her friends in a long time when the two of you took a bathroom break. the bathroom break had backfired too, you prosed the question about going to the bathroom hoping she'd shuffle you into a stall and finger you, but that was a bust.
when you peak down to look at the time on your phone you catch something interesting from the corner of your eye. caitlyn's exposed thigh from the slit, her dress is bunched up a little at her waist so the amount of skin showing is more.
your nimble fingers trace down her thigh, smirking at the feel of goosebumps rising on her skin. settling your hand on her thigh, not too far low and not too high, just yet.
cait turns her head to peer down at the hand on her thigh, your pinky rubbing back and forth on the soft skin. then to your face, you flash her a smile and she does the same, pressing a quick peck to your lips before she turns her attention back to her friends. you feel as though a grey gloomy cloud was cast over you in that moment.
in a burst of inspiration you begin to inch your hand high, little by little until a few of your finger tips are dipping past the slit of that dress towards her clothed cunt.
her head instantly snaps towards you, eyes narrowed.
"what do you think you're doing?"
"i want to play." you shrug.
"and i told you not here."
"but i really want it," your gaze on caitlyn growing dark. "mommy." purring out the name so only the two of your could hear it
caitlyn's eyebrows raise in shock before they settle back down, turning her head to see her friends are still deep in conversation. her hand pulling yours from between her thighs. there isn't a harsh grip around your hand but it is tight, and with that hand she pulls you forward.
"fix your attitude and behave. maybe i'll think about touching you when we get back home."
you sit up straighter a grin forming on your face. nodding your head "m'kay." caitlyn squints her eyes at your sudden sudden change, releasing your hand.
a few moments pass by and you're already thinking of defying cait again. this time your hand finds her shoulder. you're bored so you begin to trace shapes on it, but then that gets boring so you start toying with her dress strap.
"stop that." her voice startles you.
you roll you eyes, confidently, because caitlyn isn't even looking at you.
"'m not even doing anything."
"yet." the pronunciation of the word is precise and harsh.
she turns back to you, "you're thinking of doing something. so i suggest before you do, that you don't."
"cait." you whine.
"what's going on with you, hm?"
"i told you."
"you're never this bad in public." that's true, but you've never had to wait this long for your girlfriend to touch you.
"you don't get it."
she eyes you. "no, i think i do," leaning forward her lips ghost yours. "seems as though i've spoiled you rotten which is causing you to act like a little slut in front of all my friends."
her voice dropped to an octive, enacting a reaction of chills down your body, wetness pooling between your thighs.
"be quiet or you won't cum for a week." she commands, pressing a kiss to your lips and refocusing herself.
"whaâ"
suddenly caitlyn's hand dismisses the fabric of your skirt to between your thighs. fingers getting to work by rubbing at your clothes clit. you look up to see that cait now has her drink in her other hand, bringing it up to her lips to take a sip. her peripheral vision catching you and flicking her eyes to you, corking an eyebrow up at you.
as she is finished with her drink and sets it down her fingers push past your panties, spreading your legs a little wider to welcome her large hand. slow lazy circles on you clit was all you got for awhile, but it was enough to simmer your ache.
without warning cait bullies a finger into your sopping heat, causing you to let out a loud gasp. the entire table turning to you.
"are you okay?" one of her friends asks.
"yeah. you feeling alright, love?" her voice is laced in false concern. slipping another finger into your greedy cunt, observing your reaction.
you shuffle, looking around the table, then down at your empty plate. you can see cait's hand flexing as she pumps fingers in and out of you.
"uhâ none of us has ordered dessert yet! it's not a dinner without dessert," you prose. "hm, right?"
the table agrees, and someone beckons the waiter over.
while everyone is occupied, caitlyn leans forward to your ear. "quick thinking, little one." she praises, watching as the waiter takes everyone's dessert orders. "order up, love."
"and what would you like?" the waiter asks.
biting down on your lip, hard. "hm, what's good?" there was an infliction on your voice from cait pressing her thumb against your clit as she fingers you.
"the molten lava cake is our most popularâ"
you cut them off. "i'll take that!" a muffled moan escaped through your mouth, "hmm, sounds very delicious." hoping that saved yourself.
the waiter writes it down on their pad, turning their attention to caitlyn. "and for you ma'am?"
"oh, her and i will share." she confirms.
as the waiter walks off your head turns to cait, glossy eyes boring into her cold blue eyes. "caitâ"
"i know" she shushes, she already knows you're close by the way you're desperate sucking her fingers back in. you're not sure if it's all in your head, but you swear cait fingering you underneath the table is causing the obscene squelches from your messy cunt to reverb and echo through the restaurant. to combat the noise you squeeze your thighs around cait's hand, but she persists.
flinging a hand down to grip at the hand between your thighs, you're so close that you don't even care if her friends caught on. not when her slender fingers that spot so deep within that only cait can reach.
just as you legs begin to shake uncontrollably, caitlyn whips her fingers from you needy cunt and between your thighs. grabbing the cloth napkin to wipe off your juices from her fingers, an icy glare is sent your way as she sets it back down, one that tells you everything.
brats don't get to cum.
⣠going back to spooning with caitlyn, she also loves to place you in her lap while the two of you watch tv. your head in the crook of her shoulder and a hand of hers in your hair, playing with it. until suddenly when she was innocently twirling a piece of your hair you'll feel a tug at it, causing you to gasp unexpectedly. or she'll get straight to it, so a her hand will find its way on the nape of your neck, slim fingers threading themselves through the underside of your hair before she yanks, now this will cause you to moan out, head falling back so she's cradling it in her hand. wet lips finding their way to your exposed neck, kissing and nipping away at the sensitive skin. you'll whine out, only for cait to shh you, "let me have my fun, love."
⣠there's something intoxicating about you being naked while caitlyn is completely clothed. the contrast between your crumbling figure and her composure. she also loves seeing how your sensitive body reacts to the feeling of her clothes on your body. her favorite is to press her clothed chest to your bare one while the two of you are messily making out, your nipples immediately hardening. even the way she can feel your slick soaking through her slack covered thigh, tainting the material. it drives her insane when she makes you squirt, your juices all over her button up making the material darker.
⣠when you're particularly needy and need something to shut you up she'll shove a few fingers in your mouth, watching the way your eyelids drop and you focus on sucking on her fingers. on other occasions she'll order you on your knees, grabbing a cushion for them. and she'll strip slowly and teasingly for you.
you watch her hips sway, raking in her naked body. her blue bush in your face and you feel drool pool into your mouth, gulping. a hand comes to your chin, pushing your head up to look up at her.
"you've been needy," she begins. "but, you've also been good. so i was thinking of putting your neediness to use, i want your mouth."
nodding your head aggressively, eyes dropping back down.
"words."
a hand still on your chin tips your head, peering up with wide doe eyes, cait's expression is cold as she stands over you. "yes, use me mommy, please."
her face relaxes and she smiles down at you, "good girl." your chin is released and her hand smooths over the back of your head, pushing it forward.
taking her clit in your mouth, you moan into her. lapping her up, you free your hands from your lap, placing them on her hips to burry yourself further between her pretty thighs. eyes fluttering shut, savoring the taste of the woman standing above you.
"ah, that's it. s'good." cait's noises of pleasure sounds like music to your ears. opening your eyes to view up her body, she truly is a stallion. her eyes are shut, her shirt long discarded on the floor as she toys with one of her breast, her hand still on your head keeping you pressed up close to her, and her mouth is agape.
your wet muscle working away at her, gliding through her sticky folds. slurping up all her arousal, not wasting a drop.
"soâ" she begins. but gasp when you take her clit and suck on it. "shit. so," she gasp again, "so eager to please."
nodding into her, not wanting to let up. releasing a moan into her, causing the grasp in your hair to tighten.
"c'mon, love. make me cum," doe eyes staring back into her drowsy eyes as she lazily talks. "make mommy cum."
caitlyn addressing herself as mommy made you clench your thighs, the ache between your thighs becoming very apparent.
your pushed so far into her that your nose is up against her bush, her scent only enhancing your eagerness.
cait begin to slightly rock back and forth in your mouth maneuvering your head so she's practical long dragging her cunt against your face. your finger nails grip into her hips, adding to her movements. her juices dripping down your chin to dip down your neck.
"fuck!" she yelps, her sweet release washing over her shuttering body and you quickly slurp it up.
the grip in your hair releases. when your satisfied you let up, but quickly you place a kiss upon cait's clit, letting up with a mwah. a shiny sheen covering the bottom half of your face, even the tip of your nose.
cait's hand finds it's way on your face once again, but it cradles you jaw this time, thumb swiping over your plump, slick cover lips.
"my baby always knows how to care of me, doesn't she?" she purs, droopy eyes sparkling down at you with a dazzling smile to match.
⣠whenever cait is strapping you she prefers to be gentle with you. it'll take a lot of begging and or pressing your luck to get her to be really rough with you (like the first time you ever called her mommy). she also just prefers it. she likes taking it slow with you whenever she fucks you with her cock, in missionary so she's able to see your twisted up face from pleasure. she's also just a plain sucker for intimacy, the two of you so close that you're not even sharing space the space you two take up is its own completely new thing. everything of the outside world just washes away, and she gets to focus on you and only you. she loves being able to look you in your eye and dip her head in the crook of your neck to litter kisses and love bites across it and down your collarbones to your tits. and she really loves when you cum, your back arching off the bed your chest pressing further into hers, your head falling back, mouth agape and releasing pretty moans and whines of your climax, even your toes curling and uncurling. she eats it up. she loves it. she loves you.
#đ àŁȘË ÖŽÖ¶Öžđ alice writes.#caitlynàŸàœČ txt.#۶ৠolder gf!caitlyn.#arcane#arcane x reader#arcane x you#arcane fluff#arcane smut#caitlyn kiramman#caitlyn arcane#caitlyn kiramman x reader#caitlyn kiramman x you#caitlyn kiramman fluff#caitlyn kiramman smut#lesbian#wlw
2K notes
·
View notes
Note
I absolutely love your Alastor smut! Is there anyway you can make one where your Voxâs ex and Alastor decided to somehow show off to Vox how much reader loves his c*ck more?? A special broadcast maybe?? Please keep up the great work!
a/n: i love vox but if there's one thing i love more, its making him feel inferior to alastor đ this is soo good. REQUESTS OPEN! đ©·
tags: 18+ smut nsfw!
vox thought alastor couldn't get any worse, there was nothing that shit-for-brains demon could do to enrage him more. that was until valentino told him that alastor had a new pretty little thing hanging on his arm. "he WHAT?!" vox's voice cracks from the sheer force he puts behind those words. valentino snickers, watching vox run to his security room.
and there you were, locked arms with that fucking deer demon, walking down the street. you looked absolutely enthralled with that fucker! "you've gotta be fucking kidding me..." he growls, static filling his vision. as if alastor can sense that they're being watched, he winks at the camera and pulls you down a more secluded path. vox puts his fist straight through the screen before pacing around the room. it couldn't have been more than a few minutes before his ears pick up that voice, that shitty radio voice.
"good evening viewers!" alastor begins, making vox's head spin around. the tvs were blank, just audio playing through them. he's about to smash the rest of them when something catches his attention. he swears he hears a familiar noise, your noises specifically. then he hears you panting, and blood rushes to his groin first and then his face. "thank you for tuning into a very special late night broadcast." alastor's voice sounds... breathier.
"what the fuck is-" vox mutters to himself before his eyes go wide. "o-oh god." you moan, sounding far too sexy. and enjoying yourself far too much. "yes alastor, fuck. that's so good." your whines play out, filling the room and vox is just about to lose it. "is alastor fucking your ex?" valentino leans against the doorframe, a smug look on his face. "youâre so tight, my dear. your cunt was made for my cock just as i was made for radio." he laughs to himself, his hands finding your hips as he fucks you over his desk.
this little plan of his was working just as intended. he asked, of course, if you'd be interested in ruffling your exes feathers a little bit and you agreed. this special broadcast was only being shown directly to vox through his security. not a single other soul would be able to hear you but vox. it sent a certain chill up your spine, knowing that he was definitely listening. every thrust of alastor's cock presses you harder into the desk, bruises sure to form later in the evening.
"that's kinda hot, yknow-" "SHUT UP VAL." vox feels as though he's about to implode, anger coursing through him in a way he's sure he's never felt. "i am going to finish him. both of them. they won't live this down."
valentino covers his mouth to stop from laughing. "it sounds like they're about to finish each other." and he was right. your breathy little moans are a dead giveaway. "please, please your cock feels so good. g-gonna cum." vox paces the room, plotting your downfall but his cock is hard as a fucking rock in his pants.
"such a good girl, you are. you sing so pretty my dear." alastor grunts, pressing the head of his cock up against your cervix before he feels you clamp down around him. with every pulse of youe orgasm, alastor follows. "cum alastor, p-please fill my pussy." you gasp, riding out wave after wave of deep pleasure. vox should turn this off, he should walk away but he can't make his feet move.
and after alastor finishes deep inside of you, filling you to the point of it leaking down his cock, he lets out an almost sinister chuckle. "thank you my loyal viewers for tuning in for this one of a kind show! we hope you thoroughly enjoyed."
the room is silent after the broadcast ends. that is, until velvette clears her throat. "was that alastor fucking your bitch?" she raises a brow, a slow smirk spreading over her lips when she sees vox's face.
"no one talk to me. i have business to attend to." and with that, vox disappears, leaving valentino and velvette to themselves.
"bold move, i gotta hand it to him."
#hazbin hotel smut#alastor x reader#alastor x reader smut#alastor x you#hazbin hotel#hazbin hotel x reader#alastor smut#hazbin hotel alastor#alastor hazbin hotel#hazbin alastor#hazbin alastor smut#alastor#hazbin alastor x reader#hazbin hotel imagines#hazbin hotel vox#vox hazbin hotel#hazbin vox
6K notes
·
View notes
Text
Love Again
Charles Leclerc x widow!Reader
Summary: you never thought you would be able to let someone else into your heart after your husband passed away, but when a bucket list your husband left you to fulfill inadvertently leads you straight into Charlesâ path, you learn exactly what it means to love again
Warnings: death of significant other
The funeral is everything you expected it to be and nothing like you imagined. The church is suffocatingly full, every pew occupied, and the walls themselves seem to press in on you.
You sit in the front row, your hands clasped tightly in your lap, knuckles white against the black fabric of your dress. You havenât said a word since you walked into the church, since you caught sight of the casket at the front, draped in a flag. You canât speak because if you open your mouth, youâre certain youâll break apart.
You focus on the details instead. The way the flowers â lilies, his favorite â are arranged with too much precision. The way the air smells faintly of old wood and incense. The way the murmur of the crowd sounds like itâs coming from underwater. Your head is spinning, but your body is still, a statue carved out of grief and shock.
You hear the scrape of a chair being moved and look up just in time to see the man taking the pulpit. You recognize him, vaguely, as someone from the organization â Doctors Without Borders. He was there when it happened. He was there with him.
He clears his throat, glances down at a piece of paper in his hand, then up at the crowd. âIâm not sure I have the right words for this,â he begins, his voice low and trembling just enough to be noticeable. âBut Iâll try.â
You hate him a little for that â for having to try. You donât want him to try. You want him to fail, to stumble over his words, to not be able to get them out. But he doesnât. He takes a deep breath and continues.
âJames was ... the best of us. You all know that. He was selfless, tireless. He didnât just want to save lives â he did it. Every day. In the most dangerous places, under the most terrifying conditions. He was a healer in the truest sense of the word.â The manâs voice catches for a second, but he pushes through it. âAnd he was my friend.â
You flinch at that, a sharp pain slicing through your chest.
âHe saved us that day,â the man says. âHe saved all of us.â
The church is so quiet now, you could hear a pin drop. You canât take your eyes off the man at the pulpit. You want him to stop talking. You want him to stop telling you things you canât bear to hear. But he doesnât stop.
âWe were in the middle of the compound when the shelling started. It came out of nowhere. One minute we were patching up a kid whoâd been hit by shrapnel, and the next, the whole world was exploding around us. We were trapped. There was no way out.â The manâs voice lowers, almost like heâs talking to himself now. âBut James ... James didnât hesitate. He ran toward the blast, toward the fire. He pulled people out, dragged them to safety.â
A tear slips down your cheek, and you swipe it away angrily.
âHe was hit by the last shell,â the man continues, his voice trembling now. âHe was trying to get one of the nurses out. She was trapped under some debris. He managed to free her, but then the shell hit, and ...â The manâs voice falters, and he closes his eyes for a moment. âHe didnât make it.â
Thereâs a collective gasp from the crowd, a ripple of shock that moves through the room like a wave. You feel it crash over you, pulling you under. You canât breathe. You canât think. You canât do anything but sit there and listen as the man finishes his eulogy.
âHe died a hero,â the man says, his voice breaking. âHe died saving lives, the way he always wanted to. And I ... I donât know how to make sense of it. I donât know how to make it okay.â
He steps back from the pulpit, his head bowed, and thereâs a moment of silence so thick, itâs suffocating. You feel like youâre drowning, like the walls of the church are closing in on you. You need to get out, but you canât move. Youâre frozen in place, trapped in your grief.
Finally, you manage to take a breath, and it feels like your lungs are on fire. You get to your feet, unsteady, and start to make your way down the aisle. You can feel the eyes of everyone in the church on you, but you donât care. You need to get out. You need air.
You push through the heavy wooden doors and stumble out into the daylight, gasping for breath like youâve been underwater for hours. The sky is too blue, the sun too bright. Everything is too much.
You lean against the wall of the church, pressing your forehead to the cool stone, trying to steady yourself. But the tears come anyway, hard and fast, and you canât stop them. You donât even try.
You donât know how long you stand there, sobbing into the wall, but eventually, you hear footsteps behind you. You donât have to turn around to know who it is â your husbandâs best friend.
âHey.â His voice is soft, hesitant.
You donât respond. You canât. You just keep crying.
âI ... Iâm so sorry,â he says. He steps closer, and you can feel the warmth of his presence beside you. âI donât know what to say.â
âThereâs nothing to say,â you manage to choke out, your voice raw.
Heâs silent for a moment, and then he takes a deep breath. âJames ... he gave me something. To give to you. In case ... in case something happened.â
You turn to look at him, your vision blurred by tears. Heâs holding an envelope, white and plain, with your name on it in Jamesâ handwriting. Your heart stutters in your chest.
âHe asked me to give it to you,â he says, holding the envelope out to you. âBut only when youâre ready.â
You stare at the envelope like itâs a bomb about to go off. You donât want to take it. You donât want to know whatâs inside. But you reach for it anyway, your hand shaking.
âTake your time,â he says softly. âThereâs no rush.â
You nod, clutching the envelope to your chest like itâs a lifeline. You canât bring yourself to open it, not yet. You donât even know if you ever will.
âThank you,â you whisper, your voice barely audible.
He nods, his eyes full of sympathy and something else â something you canât quite place. âIâm here if you need anything,â he says. âAnything at all.â
You nod again, not trusting yourself to speak. He lingers for a moment, like he wants to say something more, but then he just gives you a small, sad smile and walks away.
You watch him go, the envelope still clutched tightly in your hand, and you feel the weight of it like a stone in your chest. You know that whateverâs inside is going to change everything, and youâre not sure youâre ready for that.
But you donât have a choice.
***
The envelope sits in the top drawer of your nightstand, hidden beneath an old notebook and a stack of receipts you keep meaning to throw away. Itâs been there for over a year, untouched.
Some days, you forget about it entirely, letting the routine of work and lonely dinners numb the ache in your chest. But most days, it lingers in the back of your mind, a quiet hum of guilt and grief that you canât quite shake.
You know youâre supposed to open it â James left it for you, after all. But every time you reach for the drawer, your hand hovers just above the handle, frozen. Because what if the letter makes it worse? What if the words on the paper bring everything crashing back down on you, when youâve spent so long trying to build yourself back up?
So you leave it. Days turn into weeks, and then months, until a whole year has passed. Friends have stopped asking how youâre doing, their well-meaning calls and texts fading away into awkward silence. You donât blame them. Itâs not like youâve been much of a person to be around.
But today, for some reason, you canât ignore it any longer.
Itâs raining outside, the kind of steady drizzle that makes the world feel smaller, quieter. You sit on the edge of the bed, staring at the drawer like itâs going to open itself. The house is still, too still, and the sound of the rain against the window only amplifies the silence.
Your hand trembles as you pull the drawer open. The envelope is right where you left it, the edges slightly yellowed now, but the ink still bold and clear: your name, in Jamesâ handwriting. Seeing it sends a pang through your chest, like someoneâs reached inside and squeezed your heart.
You sit there for a long time, just holding it. Itâs ridiculous, really. Itâs just paper. But it feels heavier than anything youâve ever held.
âJust open it,â you whisper to yourself, but the words feel hollow, like they belong to someone else.
Finally, with a shaky breath, you tear the seal.
Inside, thereâs a folded letter. Beneath it, another piece of paper â something thicker. You hesitate, then unfold the letter first. The handwriting is familiar, the slant of the letters uniquely his. You read it slowly, your eyes scanning the words with a mix of dread and longing.
My love,
If youâre reading this, then Iâm not there with you. And Iâm so, so sorry for that.
I wish I could tell you how much I wanted to come home. How much I needed to come home to you. But I know that wherever I am now, Iâm still with you in some way. I have to believe that. Otherwise, I think Iâd lose my mind.
This is the part where Iâm supposed to tell you to be strong, to keep living your life. And you will. I know you will. But itâs okay to fall apart first. Itâs okay to break, to cry, to scream at the universe for being so damn unfair. I would.
There are so many things I wish we couldâve done together, so many things we talked about but never got the chance to do. So Iâm leaving you with something. A list. Itâs not a list of things you have to do â itâs a list of things I wish we couldâve experienced together. But more than that, itâs a list of things I want you to experience. For both of us.
The first oneâs a bit selfish. But the last one ... that oneâs for you.
I love you more than words can ever say. And if thereâs any way for me to still be with you, to still be a part of your life, then I hope this is it.
Yours always,
Jamie
By the time you finish reading, tears blur your vision, dripping silently onto the letter. You wipe at your face, but the tears just keep coming. His words cut through you, raw and tender, like a wound thatâs never fully healed.
You sit there for what feels like hours, the rain outside matching the rhythm of your sobs. Itâs only after youâve cried yourself out that you remember the second piece of paper, still folded in the envelope.
With a shaky breath, you unfold it.
Itâs a bucket list. Five items, written in Jamesâ scrawled handwriting. Your heart clenches as you read them, one by one.
1. Go to an F1 race. You know how much I wanted to see one in person. Do this for me. I want you to feel the rush, the excitement. Itâs something I never got to experience, and I want you to feel it for both of us.
2. Visit that little café in Paris we always talked about. The one by the Seine with the red awning. We were supposed to go there on our honeymoon, remember? Have a coffee, eat too many croissants. Just sit there and watch the world go by.
3. Take a road trip with no destination in mind. Just drive. Donât plan anything. Turn down random roads, get lost, stay in tiny motels, and eat at diners where they donât know your name. I always wanted to do that with you.
4. Dance in the rain. We talked about doing it, but we never did. Just let go and do it. Donât care if people are watching. Donât worry about looking silly. Just feel the rain and think of me.
5. Find love again. I know this one is hard, and I know you might not want to think about it right now. But promise me that one day, when youâre ready, youâll open your heart again. It doesnât have to be soon. It doesnât have to be anyone like me. But donât close yourself off to it. You deserve that kind of happiness.
You sit there, staring at the list, your chest tight and your hands trembling. Itâs so ... James. The way he could be both lighthearted and deeply thoughtful, the way he always wanted you to live fully, even if he couldnât anymore.
But how can you? How can you even think about doing these things without him?
You read the list again, and this time it feels different. Less like a burden, and more like a challenge. A promise, almost. To live. To try.
But the last item â thatâs the one that breaks you. Find love again. The words echo in your mind, and you can barely breathe through the weight of them. It feels impossible, inconceivable. And yet, itâs the one thing James wanted most for you.
A knock at the door pulls you out of your thoughts. You quickly wipe your eyes, folding the letter and the list back into the envelope before shoving it into the drawer again. You stand up, trying to compose yourself.
When you open the door, you find his best friend, the one who gave you the letter in the first place, standing there. His expression softens the moment he sees your face.
âYou finally opened it,â he says gently.
You nod, unable to speak for a moment.
He steps inside, closing the door behind him. âIâve been wondering when you would.â
âI ... I couldnât,â you admit, your voice barely above a whisper. âNot until today.â
He sits down on the couch, and you join him, the silence between you heavy but not uncomfortable.
âWhat did he say?â He asks softly.
You hand him the list, unable to find the words yourself. He reads it, a small smile tugging at his lips as he reaches the last item.
âThatâs James,â he says, shaking his head. âAlways thinking about everyone else.â
You laugh, but it comes out as more of a sob. âHow am I supposed to do this? How am I supposed to just ... live my life without him?â
âYouâre not,â he says, his voice gentle. âYouâre supposed to live your life with him. By doing these things, youâre keeping him with you.â
You stare at the list again, your heart aching. âBut the last one ...â
He doesnât say anything for a long time. Then, quietly, he asks, âDo you think heâd want you to be alone forever?â
You shake your head, tears spilling over again. âNo. But I donât know how to ... move on.â
âYou donât have to move on,â he says. âYou just have to keep moving. One step at a time.â
You nod, even though it feels impossible. But maybe thatâs the point. Maybe this list isnât just about Jamesâ dreams. Maybe itâs about helping you find your way back to yourself.
âI guess Iâd better start with number one,â you say, your voice shaky but determined.
He smiles, and for the first time in a long time, you feel like maybe â just maybe â you can do this.
***
The roar of engines echoes through the air as you step out of the taxi, your heart pounding with a mix of anticipation and anxiety. The circuit sprawls out before you, a sea of red, blue, and green flags waving in the hands of thousands of fans, all buzzing with excitement. You clutch your ticket tightly, the edges crumpled from your nervous grip.
It took everything in you to get here. The flight, the hotel, the whole ordeal of buying a ticket from some sketchy reseller online â all of it felt like a test of your resolve.
But this is for James. You repeat that to yourself like a mantra. He wouldâve loved this, you think, as you look up at the towering grandstands. The hum of the engines, the electricity in the air, the sheer intensity of it all â itâs exactly the kind of thing he would have dragged you to, his enthusiasm infectious.
But now, youâre here alone. And that thought twists in your chest, a painful reminder of why youâre doing this in the first place.
You make your way to the entrance, the ticket clenched in your hand. The queue moves quickly, fans eager to get to their seats, their conversations a mix of English, French, Italian, and other languages you canât quite place.
You try to blend in, keep your head down, and avoid drawing attention to yourself. Just scan the ticket and get inside. Thatâs all you have to do.
When itâs finally your turn, you hand your ticket to the attendant, offering a small, nervous smile. He takes it without much thought, scanning the barcode with the device strapped to his wrist. But instead of the usual beep, thereâs nothing â just a blank screen.
The attendant frowns, tries again. Still nothing.
âUh, let me just check something,â he says, his tone suddenly cautious.
You feel a cold knot forming in your stomach. âIs there a problem?â
He doesnât answer right away, fiddling with the scanner, trying different angles. The queue behind you is growing restless, and you can feel eyes on your back. Finally, he looks up at you, sympathy in his eyes.
âIâm really sorry,â he says quietly, âbut this ticket isnât valid.â
You blink, not understanding. âWhat do you mean? I bought it online ...â
âItâs a fake,â he says, his voice gentle but firm. âYou mustâve been scammed. It happens sometimes with resellers.â
The words hit you like a punch to the gut. You feel the color drain from your face, your mind reeling. Fake. Scammed. The ticket crumples in your hand as you step aside, trying to make sense of it. How could this happen? You did everything right â or at least, you thought you did.
âBut ... I paid a lot for this,â you stammer, the reality of it sinking in. âI-I donât understand.â
âIâm really sorry,â the attendant repeats, glancing over your shoulder at the impatient crowd behind you. âThereâs nothing I can do. Youâll have to contact whoever you bought it from.â
You nod numbly, stepping away from the gate. The world around you seems to blur, the noise of the crowd fading into the background. You feel like youâre suffocating, your chest tight with a mixture of humiliation and despair. This was supposed to be the first thing you did for James, and you canât even get that right.
You donât know where youâre going, just that you need to get away from the entrance, away from the people. Your legs carry you to the far side of the parking lot, where the crowds thin out and the noise dulls to a low hum. You lean against a concrete pillar, your breath coming in shaky gasps.
Itâs too much. The weight of it all â the grief, the loneliness, the pressure youâve put on yourself to make this trip meaningful â itâs crushing you. You slide down to sit on the curb, burying your face in your hands as tears spill over.
âIâm sorry,â you whisper, the words meant for James, though you know he canât hear you. âIâm so sorry ...â
Youâre so caught up in your tears that you donât notice the figure approaching until heâs right in front of you. When you finally look up, your vision is blurry from the tears, but you can make out the silhouette of a man standing there, watching you with concern etched on his face.
âHey, are you okay?â His voice is soft, with a lilting accent you canât quite place, but itâs gentle enough to cut through the fog of your despair.
You quickly wipe at your eyes, trying to compose yourself, but itâs a losing battle. âIâm fine,â you manage to choke out, though itâs clear to both of you that youâre anything but.
He doesnât move, just crouches down in front of you, his brow furrowed. âYou donât look fine. What happened?â
You shake your head, embarrassed by the whole situation. âItâs stupid ... I just â I bought a ticket, and itâs fake, and I ... I just donât know what to do.â
The words tumble out between hiccups and sniffles, and you feel ridiculous for crying in front of a stranger. But he doesnât seem to mind. If anything, his expression grows even more sympathetic.
âThatâs not stupid at all,â he says gently. âYou came all this way for the race, didnât you?â
You nod, biting your lip to keep from crying again. âYeah. But now I canât even get in. I feel like such an idiot.â
âYouâre not an idiot,â he reassures you, his tone firm but kind. âPeople get scammed all the time. Itâs not your fault.â
You look up at him then, really look at him. Heâs young, probably around your age, with messy brown hair and striking green eyes that seem to radiate warmth. Heâs wearing a plain black T-shirt and jeans, nothing that would make him stand out in a crowd, but thereâs something about him â maybe the way heâs looking at you, like youâre the only person in the world that matters right now â that makes you feel a little less alone.
âI donât even know why Iâm here,â you admit, your voice barely above a whisper. âIâm not really a fan. Itâs just ... something I had to do.â
He tilts his head, curiosity in his eyes. âFor someone else?â
You nod again, fresh tears welling up. âMy husband. He ... he passed away, and this was on a list of things he wanted me to do. I thought ... I thought I could at least get this right.â
The manâs expression softens even more, if thatâs possible. He doesnât say anything for a moment, just sits there with you, letting the weight of your words settle between you.
âIâm really sorry,â he says finally, and you can tell he means it. âThat must be so hard.â
You shrug, wiping at your face again. âIt is. But I wanted to do it anyway. For him.â
He nods, and then, after a brief pause, he says, âWhat if I told you I could help?â
You look at him, confusion and hope warring in your chest. âWhat do you mean?â
He smiles, and itâs a kind, genuine smile that makes you feel like maybe things arenât as hopeless as they seem. âI might be able to get you into the race. If youâre okay with that.â
Your heart skips a beat, a flicker of hope sparking to life. âHow? Are you some kind of VIP or something?â
He laughs, a soft, melodic sound that eases some of the tension in your chest. âSomething like that. Just trust me, okay?â
You donât know why, but you do. Maybe itâs because heâs the first person whoâs really listened to you in a long time, or maybe itâs because youâre so desperate to make this work. Either way, you nod.
âOkay,â you say, your voice a little stronger now.
He pulls out his phone and dials a number, glancing back at you as he waits for the call to connect. âThis might take a minute,â he says with a reassuring smile.
You watch him, your heart pounding as you wonder just who this man is and how he plans to help you. But as you sit there, your tears drying and the noise of the race humming in the background, you canât help but feel a glimmer of something you havenât felt in a long time.
Hope.
***
Charles doesnât leave your side while he waits for the call to go through, his green eyes focused on you as if making sure youâre still okay. The sincerity in his gaze is almost unnerving, and for a brief moment, you forget about the pitiful mess youâve become, losing yourself in the quiet strength he radiates.
Whoever he is, itâs clear heâs not just a fan â thereâs something about him that feels different, like heâs used to handling situations like this with a calm confidence that most people can only fake.
He speaks briefly into the phone, in a language you donât understand, and within minutes â faster than you wouldâve thought possible â a Ferrari team member rushes toward you both, holding a shiny red VIP pass. The emblem glints in the sunlight, and as he hands it over to Charles, your brain starts to catch up. Your eyes flicker between the pass, the Ferrari logo, and Charles, whoâs now holding the pass out to you with that same reassuring smile.
âHere,â he says gently, placing the pass into your trembling hand. âThis will get you into the paddock, and pretty much anywhere else you want to go.â
You stare at the pass, then at him, the realization dawning on you slowly. Ferrari. VIP. Charles. It suddenly clicks into place, and you feel your cheeks flush with embarrassment. Heâs not just a concerned fan. Heâs someone important.
You swallow hard, looking up at him with wide eyes. âWho ... who are you?â
He chuckles, but itâs soft, not mocking, more like he finds the situation endearing. âIâm Charles. Charles Leclerc. I drive for Ferrari.â
Your mouth opens, then closes, the words you want to say sticking in your throat. Youâre mortified that you didnât recognize him, that you didnât put it together sooner. Youâve heard the name before, of course â who hasnât? But youâve never been into F1, and you hadnât expected to meet someone famous today.
âI-Iâm sorry,â you stammer, looking down at your feet. âI didnât realize ...â
âHey, itâs okay,â Charles interrupts, waving off your apology. âYouâve had a rough day. The last thing you need to worry about is recognizing some racing driver.â
âBut I shouldâve known ...â you begin, but he cuts you off again, this time with a playful smile.
âNow, why would you know that? You already told me youâre not a fan,â he teases lightly, his eyes sparkling with amusement. âAnd Iâd much rather be remembered as the guy who helped you out than as that Ferrari driver you didnât recognize.â
You canât help but laugh, albeit weakly. His charm is disarming, and itâs hard to feel embarrassed when heâs making it so clear that he doesnât care about your mistake.
âThank you,â you say, meaning it. âFor all of this. I donât know how to repay you.â
Charles shakes his head, his expression turning serious again. âYou donât need to repay me. Just enjoy the day. Experience everything to the fullest â in honor of your husband.â
You blink at him, the mention of James sending a fresh wave of emotion through you. But instead of the sharp pain youâve grown accustomed to, itâs more of a gentle ache this time, softened by the kindness of the stranger-turned-friend standing before you.
âI know what itâs like to lose people you love,â Charles continues, his voice low and sincere. âAnd I know how important it is to keep their memory alive by doing things they wouldâve loved. Itâs not easy, but ... itâs worth it.â
You donât know what to say to that. The depth of his words, the understanding in his eyes â itâs like heâs speaking directly to the part of you thatâs been hurting the most. And suddenly, you feel a connection to him that goes beyond the superficial. He gets it. He understands.
âThank you,â you whisper, your voice thick with emotion. âReally, thank you.â
He nods, his gaze holding yours for a long moment before he stands, offering you his hand. âCome on. Let me show you around.â
You take his hand, letting him pull you to your feet. His grip is warm and steady, grounding you in a way you hadnât expected. You let him lead you through the bustling parking lot, your heart still pounding but now for a different reason.
Thereâs something surreal about walking next to Charles Leclerc, knowing heâs one of the biggest names in the sport and yet treating you like youâre the important one.
As you approach the entrance to the paddock, the atmosphere shifts. Itâs a different world in here, a world of precision, speed, and power. Team members rush about, focused and intense, the hum of engines a constant background noise. But as you pass by, more than a few heads turn, eyes widening as they take in the sight of you walking with Charles. He doesnât seem to notice, or if he does, he doesnât care.
âHere we are,â he says as you reach the Ferrari hospitality area, gesturing to the sleek red building with the prancing horse logo proudly displayed. âYouâre my guest today, so feel free to make yourself at home. The team will take good care of you.â
You look up at the building, feeling a little overwhelmed. âI donât know what to say. This is ... itâs too much.â
âItâs not too much,â Charles insists, his tone gentle but firm. âItâs exactly what you deserve today. I want you to enjoy yourself.â
You open your mouth to protest, but the look in his eyes stops you. Heâs serious. He really wants this for you, and the sincerity in his voice makes it clear that this isnât just about being nice. Itâs about giving you something good in a time when good things have been hard to come by.
âOkay,â you say finally, your voice soft. âIâll try.â
Charles smiles, and itâs the kind of smile that makes you feel like maybe, just maybe, everything will be okay. âThatâs all I ask.â
He leads you inside, where the air is cool and the decor is modern and sleek, all polished surfaces and red accents. A few team members glance your way, but Charles waves them off, his focus entirely on you.
âI have to get prepped for the race,â he says, stopping just inside the entrance. âBut Iâll come see you afterward, okay?â
You blink, taken aback by his offer. âYou donât have to do that,â you stutter. âYouâve already done more than enough. I donât want to take up any more of your time.â
Charles just shakes his head, that same determined look in his eyes. âI want to. Besides, Iâll probably be in a better mood if I know youâre here cheering me on.â
The thought of actually cheering for him, of being invested in the race, is a foreign one. But the way he says it, so casual and confident, makes it seem almost natural.
âI donât really know much about racing,â you admit, feeling a little silly.
He grins. âDonât worry, youâll pick it up quickly. And if you have any questions, thereâll be plenty of people around who can help. Just relax and enjoy it.â
You nod, still feeling a little out of your depth but also oddly comforted by his words. He makes it sound so simple, so easy, like all you have to do is show up and everything else will fall into place.
âOkay,â you agree. âIâll try my best.â
âThatâs all I can ask for,â Charles says, his smile widening. âIâll see you after the race.â
He gives you a small wave before turning and heading off, his stride confident and unhurried. You watch him go, still trying to process everything thatâs happened in the last hour.
Itâs almost too much to take in â the ticket fiasco, meeting Charles, the VIP pass, and now being his personal guest for the day. It feels like youâve stepped into someone elseâs life, one filled with glamor and excitement, so different from the quiet, grief-stricken world youâve been living in.
But as you take a deep breath and look around at the world Charles has invited you into, you canât help but feel a spark of something you havenât felt in a long time â hope. Maybe, just maybe, today will be a good day.
***
You sit in the Ferrari hospitality suite, watching the festivities from a distance. The energy in the room is electric, everyone buzzing with excitement over Charlesâ win.
His face is plastered on every screen, grinning as he holds up the trophy, spraying champagne with the other drivers on the podium. The cheers echo in your ears, but thereâs a strange numbness in your chest, a disconnect between the celebration and what youâre feeling.
Youâre happy for him, of course you are. But the fact that Charles just won a race feels surreal, like something out of a dream. And youâre not sure where you fit in the dream â or if you fit in at all.
The hospitality suite is more crowded now, filled with people congratulating one another, toasting with glasses of champagne and sparkling water. The clinking of glasses and bursts of laughter fill the air, making the room feel smaller, more enclosed.
You keep to the side, clutching your phone and fiddling with the VIP pass Charles gave you earlier. The weight of it around your neck is a constant reminder that this isnât your world.
The minutes tick by, each one stretching longer than the last. You tell yourself itâs okay to leave, that Charles wonât mind if you slip out quietly. After all, heâs got plenty of people to celebrate with. People who belong here, who know him well, who are part of his world. Youâre just a stranger he happened to help.
But something keeps you in your seat, a small flicker of hope that he might actually come back. Itâs silly, really â heâs a race winner, he should be out there celebrating, soaking in the victory. Still, you find yourself glancing at the door every few minutes, wondering if maybe, just maybe, heâll keep his promise.
Nearly an hour and a half after the race ends, just as youâre convincing yourself to leave, you spot him. Charles enters the suite, now changed into a Ferrari branded polo, hair damp from what you assume was a quick shower. Heâs scanning the room, and when his eyes land on you, they light up in recognition.
Your breath catches in your throat as he makes his way over, weaving through the crowd with a purposeful stride. He looks different out of the car, more relaxed, though thereâs a tiredness in his eyes that wasnât there before.
âHey,â he says, slightly breathless when he finally reaches you. âSorry it took me so long. There were media duties, and then a debrief with the team after the podium ceremony.â
You blink up at him, stunned that he actually came. âYou â You came back.â
âOf course I did,â he replies, a small smile tugging at the corners of his lips. âI told you I would.â
You shake your head, still in disbelief. âBut you should be out there celebrating. You just won a race, Charles. You didnât have to come just to see me.â
Charles waves away your concerns, his smile widening. âI came because I wanted to. Celebrations can wait.â
Thereâs a sincerity in his tone that takes you off guard. Heâs not just saying it to be polite or to make you feel better. He actually means it. You search his eyes for a sign that heâs just being nice, but all you find is that same genuine warmth that heâs shown you from the start.
âI-I donât know what to say,â you murmur, suddenly feeling self-conscious. âIâm sorry if Iâm keeping you from anything.â
âYouâre not keeping me from anything,â Charles reassures you, his voice gentle. âIâm glad you stayed.â
You nod, still feeling a little out of place, but his words soothe some of your anxiety. âCongratulations, by the way. Iâm really happy for you.â
âThank you,â he says, and thereâs a softness in his expression that makes your heart skip a beat. âIt was a good race.â
Thereâs a brief silence, the noise of the room fading into the background as you stand there, just the two of you. Youâre not sure what to say next, the weight of the moment making it hard to think straight. But Charles doesnât seem to mind the quiet, his presence calm and unhurried.
After a few moments, Charles clears his throat, his voice hesitant. âAre you staying nearby?â
The question catches you off guard, and you blink up at him, not quite sure where heâs going with this. âUm, yes, Iâm staying at a hotel downtown.â
His eyes brighten at that, and he gives you a small, almost shy smile. âIâm staying in the same area. Thereâs a great restaurant nearby. Would you like to join me for dinner?â
Youâre taken aback by the offer, and for a moment, youâre not sure how to respond. Dinner? With Charles Leclerc? It feels like too much, like something you shouldnât accept. You donât want to intrude on his life any more than you already have.
âCharles, you donât have to spend time with me,â you start, shaking your head. âYouâve already done so much-â
He interrupts you gently, his voice firm but kind. âI want to spend time with you.â
The way he says it, so straightforward and sincere, leaves no room for doubt. Heâs not asking out of obligation or pity â he genuinely wants your company. And the thought of having dinner with him, of spending more time with someone who actually seems to care, is suddenly more appealing than anything else.
âOkay,â you say softly, meeting his gaze. âIâd like that.â
His smile widens, and you can see the relief in his eyes. âGreat. Letâs get out of here, then.â
You follow him as he leads the way out of the suite, the noise of the celebrations fading behind you. The cool evening air greets you as you step outside, the sky painted in hues of orange and pink as the sun sets. Charles is quiet as he walks beside you, his presence comforting in its steadiness.
As you reach the paddock parking lot, you spot the familiar red of a Ferrari, and you canât help but smile at the sight. Itâs fitting, in a way, like everything about this day is part of some surreal, unexpected adventure.
Charles opens the passenger door for you, waiting until youâre settled before rounding the car to get in himself. The engine purrs to life with a smooth growl, and you feel a thrill of excitement as he pulls out of the parking lot and onto the open road.
You glance over at him, taking in the relaxed set of his shoulders, the easy way he handles the car. Itâs strange how comfortable you feel with him already, like youâve known him for longer than just a few hours. Maybe itâs the way heâs treated you from the start â with kindness and understanding â or maybe itâs just the way he carries himself, with a quiet confidence that makes you feel safe.
As you drive through the city, the lights of downtown reflecting off the carâs polished surface, you canât help but wonder what this evening will bring. Itâs been a long time since youâve felt this way â hopeful, curious, maybe even a little excited. And as Charles navigates the streets with practiced ease, you start to think that maybe, just maybe, youâre finally ready to start living again.
***
The restaurant is unlike anything youâve ever experienced. Tucked away in a quiet corner of the city, itâs all exposed brick, warm lighting, and rustic charm. The kind of place that feels both intimate and alive with history, where every detail seems to whisper stories of countless other dinners, other nights, other lives.
You follow Charles to a corner table, noticing the way the candlelight flickers across his features, softening the angles of his face. Thereâs a natural ease about him, a kind of unspoken confidence that makes you feel a little more at home in this unfamiliar setting. He holds out a chair for you, and as you sit down, you canât help but feel like youâve stepped into a scene from someone elseâs life.
âThis place is incredible,â you say, glancing around at the cozy surroundings. âHow did you find it?â
Charles smiles, settling into the chair across from you. âItâs one of my favorites. A friend introduced me to it a few years ago. I come here whenever Iâm in town.â
You nod, taking in the atmosphere, the scent of fresh bread and herbs mingling with the low hum of conversation. Itâs the kind of place that feels special, even if you didnât know anything about it.
The waiter appears to take your order, and before you know it, the table is filled with plates of beautifully arranged dishes, each one more enticing than the last. Charles gestures for you to start, and you pick up your fork, feeling a little more at ease with each bite.
âThis is amazing,â you say between mouthfuls, savoring the flavors. âI donât think Iâve ever had anything like this.â
âIâm glad you like it,â Charles replies, watching you with a soft smile. âItâs one of the things I miss most when Iâm traveling â good, simple food.â
Thereâs a comfortable silence as you both enjoy the meal, the clinking of silverware and the quiet murmur of the other diners providing a gentle backdrop. Youâre grateful for the peace, for the way Charles doesnât push you to talk, doesnât ask any questions that feel too invasive.
But as the meal draws to a close, you sense a shift in the atmosphere. Charles seems to be choosing his words carefully, his expression thoughtful as he looks across the table at you.
âI hope you donât mind me asking,â he begins, his tone gentle, âbut ... would you like to talk about your husband?â
The question hangs in the air between you, and for a moment, youâre not sure if you can answer it. Itâs been so long since anyone asked, since anyone cared enough to ask, and youâre not sure if youâre ready to go back to that place, to open up the wound thatâs still so raw.
But thereâs something in Charlesâ eyes, a quiet understanding, that makes you feel like itâs okay to share this part of yourself with him. Like maybe he can handle it, even if youâre not sure you can.
âHe was on a mission in ... well, it doesnât really matter where. There was an attack â one of those random, senseless things that happen in places like that. He was helping a patient when it happened. They said he died a hero, but ... it doesnât feel like that to me. It just feels like heâs gone.â
The tears that youâve been holding back all evening finally spill over, and you donât even try to stop them. Youâre tired of pretending to be strong, tired of keeping it all inside. And somehow, with Charles sitting there, listening so intently, it feels okay to let it out.
âIâm so sorry,â he murmurs, his voice thick with emotion. âI canât even begin to imagine what that must be like.â
You wipe at your eyes, trying to pull yourself together. âItâs been over a year, but ... it still feels like it was yesterday, you know? Like Iâm still waiting for him to walk through the door, to tell me it was all some terrible mistake.â
Charles reaches across the table, his hand covering yours in a gesture thatâs as comforting as it is unexpected. âYou donât have to go through this alone,â he says softly. âAnd you donât have to rush through it either. Grief doesnât have a timeline.â
His words are like a balm, soothing some of the raw ache thatâs been sitting in your chest. You nod, unable to speak, afraid that if you do, the tears will start again and wonât stop.
Thereâs a brief silence, and then you continue, feeling the need to explain, to make him understand. âHe left me a letter ... and a list. A bucket list, of things he wanted us to do together, but he didnât get the chance. He asked me to do them for him, to ... to live the life he didnât get to.â
Charles leans forward slightly, his eyes locked on yours. âWhatâs on the list?â
You hesitate for a moment, but then you reach into your purse, pulling out the folded piece of paper thatâs become a permanent fixture in your life. You unfold it carefully, smoothing out the creases before passing it across the table to him.
He takes the list from you, his fingers brushing yours for just a moment before he begins to read. You watch his face as he scans the items, his expression shifting from curiosity to something deeper, something almost reverent.
Heâs quiet for a long time, and you wonder what heâs thinking, if heâs judging you for carrying out such a personal task, for holding on to a life thatâs no longer yours.
But when he looks up at you again, thereâs no judgment in his eyes â only empathy, and maybe even a touch of admiration.
âHave you done any of these yet?â He asks, his voice soft.
You nod your head. âIâve only just started. The first item was to go to an F1 race ... thatâs why Iâm here.â
Charlesâ gaze softens even more, and he nods slowly, as if understanding the weight of what youâve shared. âAnd Paris?â He asks, his tone careful.
You canât help but laugh a little, despite the heaviness in your chest. âParis ... I mean, who doesnât want to go to Paris? But I donât know when Iâll have the chance to tick that one off the list.â
Charles is quiet for a moment, then he hesitates, as if heâs debating something in his mind. Finally, he speaks, his voice low and tentative. âYou know ... the summer break has officially started. I donât have another race for a month, and I donât have anything I have to do for over two weeks.â
You blink at him, not quite understanding where heâs going with this. âOkay ...â
âIâve always loved Paris,â he says, his gaze steady on yours. âAnd ... I know weâve only just met, but I would love to help you tick off the second item on your list.â
You stare at him, your mind reeling from what heâs suggesting. Go to Paris? With him? Itâs crazy â itâs absolutely insane. You donât know him, not really, and the idea of going on such a personal trip with someone youâve just met feels like stepping into a world that doesnât belong to you.
But thereâs something in the way heâs looking at you, something in his voice, that makes you think that maybe, just maybe, itâs not as crazy as it seems. Maybe itâs exactly what you need.
âAre you serious?â You ask, your voice barely above a whisper.
Charles nods, his expression earnest. âSometimes the best things in life are crazy and spontaneous. And ... I know itâs a lot to ask, but I really would love to help you with this. I want to be there for you.â
You feel a lump forming in your throat, a mix of emotions swirling inside you â fear, excitement, uncertainty, and something else you canât quite name. Itâs terrifying, the idea of letting someone new into your life, of opening yourself up to the possibility of connection, of loss.
But at the same time, it feels like a lifeline, like a chance to finally start living again.
âI ... I donât know,â you stammer, unsure of how to respond. âIt just seems so ...â
âCrazy?â Charles finishes for you, a small smile playing on his lips.
âYeah,â you admit, feeling a little overwhelmed. âCrazy.â
He leans back in his chair, studying you with those steady, kind eyes. âMaybe it is. But sometimes the craziest things turn out to be the most important.â
You stare at him, your heart pounding in your chest as you weigh the decision. It would be so easy to say no, to stay in your safe, controlled world where nothing ever changes. But where has that gotten you? Nowhere.
And then, almost without realizing it, you find yourself nodding, your voice small but determined. âOkay.â
Charlesâ eyes light up with something close to relief, and he smiles at you â a genuine, warm smile that makes you feel like maybe, just maybe, this is the right choice.
âOkay?â He repeats, as if needing to hear it again.
âOkay,â you say again, a little more certain this time. âLetâs go to Paris.â
You both sit there for a moment, the reality of what youâve just agreed to sinking in. It feels like the beginning of something â something that scares you as much as it excites you.
Charles reaches across the table, gently taking your hand in his. âThank you,â he says, his voice sincere.
You look at him, and for the first time in a long time, you feel like maybe, just maybe, youâre not alone in this.
***
Youâre still reeling from the decision when the check arrives at the table. Charles grabs it before you can reach for your purse, waving away your protests with an easy smile.
âTrust me,â he says, his tone light but firm, âthis oneâs on me.â
You thank him, still half-convinced that this is all some surreal dream youâll wake up from any minute. As you step outside, the cool evening air brushes against your skin, grounding you in the reality of what just happened.
Youâre going to Paris. With Charles Leclerc. You glance at him, wondering how he can be so calm when your world has just been flipped upside down.
âOkay, so ... whatâs the plan?â You ask, trying to keep your voice steady as your mind races with all the logistics you need to sort out.
He turns to you with that relaxed smile, as if planning a spontaneous trip to Paris is the most natural thing in the world. âPlan? We drive back to the hotel, grab our things, and head to the airport.â
âThe airport?â You blink at him, thrown by the suddenness of it all. âI havenât even booked a flight yet. Or a hotel. Or anything.â
Charles chuckles softly, shaking his head. âYou donât need to worry about any of that. Iâve got it covered.â
You open your mouth to argue, to tell him that you canât possibly let him do this, but he cuts you off before you can say a word.
âReally,â he says, his voice gentle but firm. âItâs no trouble at all. Iâm an F1 driver, remember? Iâve got more than enough resources, and I want to do this for you.â
You stare at him, at the easy confidence in his tone, at the sincerity in his eyes. You know he means it, but it still feels like too much. âCharles, I ... I donât want to take advantage of you.â
âYouâre not.â He steps closer, his expression softening. âThis is something I want to do. For you. For your husband. Please, let me help you.â
Thereâs a quiet intensity in his voice that makes it impossible to argue. You nod slowly, feeling a mix of gratitude and disbelief. âOkay ... thank you. I just â I donât know what to say.â
âYou donât have to say anything,â he assures you. âJust pack your things and meet me back here in a few minutes. Weâll take care of the rest.â
And just like that, you find yourself heading back to your hotel, your heart pounding with a mixture of excitement and anxiety. You pack quickly, throwing your essentials into your suitcase with trembling hands. The reality of whatâs happening starts to sink in, and for a moment, youâre overwhelmed by the sheer craziness of it all.
You pause, standing in the middle of the room with your half-packed suitcase, wondering if youâre really doing this. Paris. With a man youâve just met. Itâs all too surreal, too spontaneous, too-
Thereâs a knock on your door, and you nearly jump out of your skin. You open it to find Charles standing there, his expression calm and reassuring.
âReady?â He asks, as if this is the most normal thing in the world.
You take a deep breath, nodding. âYeah ... I think so.â
âGood.â He smiles, and somehow, that simple gesture is enough to steady you. âLetâs go.â
You follow him downstairs, your heart racing as he drives you both back to his hotel. He parks the car, and you watch as he disappears inside, returning a few minutes later with a small duffel bag slung over his shoulder.
âThatâs it?â You ask, surprised at how little heâs carrying.
He nods, tossing the bag into the back seat. âThe team will pack up the rest of my stuff and have it sent home later.â
You donât have time to process the implications of that before heâs back in the driverâs seat, navigating the streets with the kind of ease that comes from years of traveling. You try to keep up with the conversation, but your mind keeps drifting to what lies ahead, to the sheer audacity of what youâre about to do.
Itâs only when you pull up to a private airstrip that the full reality of the situation hits you. You step out of the car, staring in awe at the sleek, chartered jet waiting on the tarmac. The sight of it leaves you breathless, the sheer scale of what Charles is doing for you almost too much to comprehend.
âCharles ...â you begin, your voice catching in your throat.
He turns to you, his expression soft. âYes?â
âThis is ... I mean, I donât know what to say. This is more than I could have ever imagined. Are you sure-â
âIâm sure.â His tone leaves no room for doubt, and he reaches for your hand, squeezing it gently. âCome on. Weâve got a flight to catch.â
He leads you up the steps, and before you know it, youâre inside the luxurious cabin, sinking into a plush leather seat. Everything about the jet screams opulence â the polished wood accents, the soft ambient lighting, the quiet hum of the engines in the background. Itâs the kind of luxury youâve only ever seen in movies, and you canât quite believe that itâs real, that youâre really here.
Charles takes the seat across from you, his expression relaxed as he buckles his seatbelt. âComfortable?â
You nod, still too stunned to form a coherent response. He smiles at your wide-eyed wonder, and you realize that this kind of thing must be second nature to him. For you, itâs a once-in-a-lifetime experience. For him, itâs just another day in the life of an F1 driver.
âJust sit back and relax,â he says, as if sensing your thoughts. âWeâll be in Paris before you know it.â
The flight itself is smooth and uneventful, the hours passing in a blur of disbelief and quiet conversation. Charles keeps things light, sharing stories from his racing career, and you find yourself relaxing more with each passing minute. Itâs easy to forget about your worries when youâre with him, easy to get lost in the charm of his stories and the warmth of his smile.
Before you know it, the plane begins its descent, and the lights of Paris come into view below, twinkling like a sea of stars. The sight of the city leaves you breathless, the sheer beauty of it almost too much to take in. You press your face to the window, unable to tear your eyes away from the breathtaking panorama of the City of Light.
âBeautiful, isnât it?â Charlesâ voice is soft, and when you turn to look at him, thereâs a wistfulness in his eyes that tugs at your heart.
âYes,â you whisper, feeling a surge of emotion welling up inside you. âItâs ... itâs perfect.â
The plane touches down smoothly, and within minutes, youâre whisked away in a sleek black car, driving through the streets of Paris as the city comes alive around you. The streets are bustling with life, the cafes and bistros glowing with warm light, the air filled with the sound of laughter and music.
Itâs everything youâve ever imagined and more, and you canât believe youâre really here, experiencing it all with Charles by your side.
The car pulls up in front of an exclusive, centrally located hotel, and you step out onto the cobblestone street, your heart pounding in your chest. The hotel is grand, its facade illuminated by golden lights, and as you step inside, youâre greeted by a world of elegance and sophistication.
You barely have time to take it all in before youâre being led to a two-bedroom suite with the most stunning views of the Eiffel Tower youâve ever seen. You stand by the window, staring out at the iconic landmark as it sparkles against the night sky, the reality of your situation hitting you all over again.
âI canât believe this is happening,â you murmur, your voice barely above a whisper.
Charles steps up beside you, his gaze focused on the view outside. âBelieve it,â he says softly, his tone filled with quiet conviction. âYouâre here. Weâre here. And tomorrow, weâll start checking off that list.â
You turn to look at him, your eyes filled with gratitude and something else â something youâre not quite ready to name. âThank you. For everything. I donât even know how to begin to thank you.â
He smiles, a warm, genuine smile that lights up his face. âYou donât have to thank me. Iâm just glad I can be here for you.â
You feel a surge of emotion welling up inside you, and before you can stop yourself, you reach out and pull him into a hug. Itâs a long, lingering embrace, filled with all the gratitude, all the emotion you canât put into words. Charles holds you close, his arms wrapped around you in a way that makes you feel safe, comforted, understood.
When you finally pull back, there are tears in your eyes, but theyâre tears of relief, of something like hope. âGood night, Charles,â you whisper, your voice thick with emotion.
âGood night,â he replies, his voice just as soft. âSleep well. Weâve got a big day tomorrow.â
You watch as he heads to his own room, and then you turn back to the window, staring out at the glittering Eiffel Tower. It feels like a dream, but for the first time in a long time, itâs a dream youâre ready to embrace.
***
The sun is already high in the sky when you finally open your eyes, the weight of the past few days still pressing down on you like a heavy blanket. The exhaustion is bone-deep, the kind that makes every movement feel like wading through thick syrup.
You stretch out in the luxurious hotel bed, the cool sheets tangling around your legs as you blink against the soft light filtering through the curtains. Paris. Youâre in Paris. The thought slips through your mind, almost unreal, as if you might wake up any second to find yourself back in the monotony of the past year.
You sit up slowly, taking in the spacious room with its elegant furniture and the faint sounds of the city outside. Itâs almost noon, you realize, glancing at the clock on the bedside table. Just as youâre about to contemplate the day ahead, thereâs a gentle knock on the door connecting your room to Charlesâ. You almost forgot about him for a second â almost.
âGood morning,â you call out, your voice still thick with sleep.
The door opens, and Charles steps in, a smile lighting up his face as he sees you. âGood afternoon, you mean,â he teases lightly, leaning against the doorframe. âI was beginning to think you might sleep through the whole day.â
You rub your eyes, shaking your head as you try to fully wake up. âI guess I was more tired than I thought.â
He nods, his expression softening. âNo rush. Weâve got all the time in the world.â
Itâs that statement that hits you more than it should. All the time in the world. You used to believe that too. You push the thought away quickly, not wanting to drown in it.
âWhatâs the plan?â You ask, forcing yourself to focus on the present, on this strange, wonderful day thatâs somehow yours.
Charles grins, his eyes sparking with something mischievous. âHow do you feel about lunch at a little cafĂ© by the Seine?â
Your heart skips a beat. The cafĂ©. The red awning. Itâs what your husband wanted, what he wrote down on that list. You swallow, trying to keep your emotions in check. âThat sounds perfect.â
Charles seems to sense the shift in your mood, his smile softening into something more understanding. He doesnât push, just nods and steps back, giving you space to get ready. âIâll wait for you in the lobby.â
When heâs gone, you take a deep breath and head to the bathroom, the reality of where you are and what youâre doing starting to sink in. You canât help but think of the letter, the list. Of the man who should be here with you instead of buried under the earth. You splash cold water on your face, trying to shake off the melancholy that clings to you like a second skin.
By the time you join Charles downstairs, youâve managed to put on a smile, though it feels fragile, like it might shatter at any moment. He greets you with a warm, reassuring look, his eyes scanning your face as if to check that youâre really okay. You nod, and he leads you outside, where a car is waiting.
The ride to the cafĂ© is quiet, filled with the soft hum of the engine and the occasional sound of the city. Charles doesnât try to fill the silence with meaningless chatter, and youâre grateful for that. Instead, he lets you stare out the window, watching as the streets of Paris unfold before you like a storybook.
When the car finally pulls up in front of the cafĂ©, your heart clenches. There it is, just like your husband described it: the small tables lined up outside, the red awning casting a warm glow over everything, the view of the Seine just beyond. Itâs almost too much. You hesitate, feeling a lump in your throat, but Charles is already out of the car, holding the door open for you.
âYou okay?â He asks quietly, his gaze steady on yours.
You nod, though youâre not sure if you believe it. âYeah. Just ... itâs exactly like he said.â
Charles doesnât say anything, just offers his arm in a gentle, old-fashioned gesture. You take it, letting him lead you to a table by the water. The waiter greets you with a smile, and Charles orders for both of you without hesitation â coffee and croissants, just like on the list.
The sun reflects off the Seine, making the water shimmer like itâs made of liquid gold. You sip your coffee slowly, savoring the rich taste, though your thoughts are a million miles away. You can almost see your husband sitting across from you, that goofy grin on his face as he tries to explain something in broken French to the waiter. You smile at the memory, even as it twists something painful deep inside you.
Charles doesnât interrupt your thoughts, just lets you have this moment. Youâre grateful for that. The croissants arrive, warm and flaky, and you find yourself laughing softly as you break off a piece, thinking of how your husband always complained that they never made them right back home. Here, though ... here theyâre perfect.
âThis was his favorite place,â you say suddenly, the words tumbling out before you can stop them. âHe talked about it all the time. Said it was the best spot in Paris, hands down.â
Charles listens, his eyes never leaving your face. âHe had good taste.â
You smile, though it wobbles a bit. âHe did.â
Thereâs a pause, a comfortable one, where you both just sit there, watching the world go by. Itâs everything your husband wanted, everything he put on that list. And yet, it feels different â like youâre living a dream that isnât entirely yours.
After a while, Charles speaks up, his tone gentle. âHave you thought about what you want to do next?â
You blink, pulling yourself out of your thoughts. âNext?â
âWith the list,â he clarifies, his eyes searching yours. âI mean, you donât have to ... but if you want to keep going, Iâd like to help.â
You open your mouth to protest, but Charles holds up a hand, cutting you off before you can start. âI know what youâre going to say,â he continues, a small smile playing at the corners of his mouth. âAnd Iâm telling you right now, youâre not bothering me. I wouldnât offer if I didnât want to.â
You look at him, really look at him, and see nothing but sincerity in his eyes. Itâs overwhelming, this kindness heâs showing you, this willingness to be a part of something so deeply personal. You donât know what to say, how to express the jumble of emotions swirling inside you.
âCharles, I-â You falter, trying to find the right words. âThis isnât your responsibility. Youâve already done so much ...â
He shakes his head, cutting you off again. âItâs not about responsibility. Itâs about doing something that feels right. And this â being here with you, helping you through this â it feels right.â
The tears well up before you can stop them, spilling over as you look away, embarrassed by how easily they come. Charles doesnât say anything, just reaches across the table to take your hand in his, his touch warm and reassuring.
âThank you,â you whisper, your voice breaking on the words.
He squeezes your hand gently. âYou donât have to thank me.â
You take a deep breath, trying to steady yourself. âI donât want you to feel obligated ...â
âI donât,â he assures you, his voice firm but kind. âI promise you, I donât.â
You nod, blinking away the last of your tears. âOkay.â
âOkay?â He echoes, a hint of a smile in his voice.
You smile back, a real one this time. âOkay.â
Thereâs a quiet moment where everything feels ... settled, like a weight has been lifted from your chest. Itâs not gone â not by a long shot â but itâs lighter, more manageable. You can breathe a little easier, see a little clearer.
Charles leans back in his chair, his eyes twinkling with that familiar mischief. âSo, what do you say we finish this coffee, eat a few more croissants than is probably advisable, and then figure out what our next adventure is?â
You laugh, a real laugh that surprises you with its brightness. âI think Iâd like that.â
And so you do just that. You sit there with Charles, sipping coffee and eating too many croissants, watching the world go by as the sun moves slowly across the sky. Itâs peaceful, almost idyllic, and for the first time in a long time, you feel a flicker of something that might be happiness.
As the afternoon stretches into evening, Charles brings up the rest of the list again, but this time, you donât try to wave him off. Instead, you find yourself talking about it, really talking, and it feels good to share it with someone who actually seems to care.
You tell him about the road trip with no destination in mind, about the other things your husband wanted you to experience. Itâs bittersweet, but thereâs a warmth to it too, a sense of connection that you didnât expect to find.
âWeâll enjoy a few more days in Paris,â Charles says, his voice steady and reassuring, âand then weâll hit the road. No plans, no deadlines. Just ... see where it takes us.â
You look at him, feeling that same pull, that same inexplicable draw thatâs been there since the moment you met him. Itâs crazy, all of this â crazy and spontaneous and completely out of your comfort zone. But maybe, just maybe, thatâs exactly what you need.
âLetâs do it,â you say, your voice stronger than you expected. âLetâs do the road trip.â
Charlesâ smile broadens. âPerfect. Weâll make it an adventure.â
***
The morning sun filters through the curtains of your hotel room, casting a golden glow that seems to soften the world around you. You stretch in bed, feeling a lightness in your chest that you havenât felt in a long time. Thereâs a sense of anticipation humming through your veins as you get ready, knowing that today marks the beginning of a new adventure.
When you step into the lobby, Charles is already there, leaning casually against a pillar, dressed in a simple t-shirt and jeans. He grins when he sees you, a playful glint in his eyes.
âReady to go?â He asks, his voice warm.
âAs ready as Iâll ever be,â you reply, a smile tugging at your lips despite the nerves fluttering in your stomach.
Charles nods, gesturing for you to follow him. âCome on, then.â
You step outside, and your breath catches in your throat. Parked at the curb is a sleek black Ferrari, its curves gleaming under the morning light. You glance at Charles in surprise, your eyebrows shooting up.
âWhere did you get this?â You ask, your voice tinged with disbelief.
He chuckles, shrugging nonchalantly. âLetâs just say I know a guy.â
You shake your head, a laugh bubbling up despite yourself. âOf course you do.â
Charles opens the trunk, helping you load your bags inside. Thereâs a thrill in the air, a sense of freedom that you havenât felt in ages. Once everything is packed, he opens the passenger door for you with a small bow, a teasing smile on his lips.
âYour chariot awaits,â he says.
You roll your eyes, but the gesture makes your heart warm. You slide into the car, sinking into the plush leather seat as Charles walks around to the driverâs side.
âReady?â He asks, his hand resting on the gear shift.
You glance over at him, meeting his gaze. Thereâs something reassuring in his eyes, something that makes you feel like, for the first time in a long time, everything might just be okay.
âReady,â you say, and with that, he starts the engine, the car roaring to life.
The two of you set off, the city of Paris fading in the rearview mirror as the open road stretches out before you. Thereâs no set destination, no strict itinerary â just miles of road and the promise of wherever the day might take you.
For the first hour, you drive in comfortable silence, the hum of the engine and the wind rushing past your ears. You watch as the landscape changes, the bustling city giving way to rolling fields and quaint villages. The farther you go, the more the tension in your chest eases.
Eventually, Charles turns to you with a grin. âPick a direction. Left or right?â
You blink, looking at the fork in the road ahead. âYouâre letting me decide?â
âOf course,â he replies. âThis is your adventure, after all.â
You hesitate for a moment, then point to the right. âRight.â
Charles nods and turns the wheel, the Ferrari smoothly gliding down the chosen path. âRight it is.â
The day passes in a blur of laughter and easy conversation. You turn down random roads, sometimes doubling back when you realize youâre hopelessly lost, but it doesnât matter. Thereâs no rush, no pressure to be anywhere but right here, right now.
You stop at a tiny roadside cafĂ© for lunch, the kind of place where the menu is handwritten on a chalkboard, and the waitress knows the regulars by name. The food is simple but delicious, and you canât help but savor every bite, feeling more alive than you have in months.
After lunch, you continue driving, the hours slipping away as you explore hidden corners of the French countryside. You pass through small towns where time seems to have stood still, with cobblestone streets and old stone houses that look like something out of a fairytale.
As evening approaches, you start to feel the weight of the day settling in your bones. You glance over at Charles, who looks just as content as you feel, his hand relaxed on the steering wheel.
âShould we start looking for a place to stay?â You ask, your voice soft.
He nods, glancing at a sign by the side of the road. âThereâs a small inn a few miles ahead. We can try there.â
You hum in agreement, the idea of a cozy inn sounding perfect after a day on the road. The Ferrari winds its way through narrow streets until you arrive at the inn, a charming, ivy-covered building that looks like itâs been plucked straight out of a storybook.
Charles parks the car, and the two of you head inside. The lobby is quaint, with old wooden beams and a stone fireplace crackling in the corner. The innkeeper, a kindly older woman with a warm smile, greets you as you approach the front desk.
âBonsoir,â she says in a lilting accent. âHow can I help you?â
Charles steps forward, his voice polite as ever. âBonsoir. We were hoping to get a room for the night.â
The innkeeperâs smile falters slightly, and she glances at the reservation book. âAh, Iâm afraid we are nearly full tonight. There is only one room left, and it has only one bed. Iâm sorry.â
Your heart sinks, and you glance at Charles, unsure what to do. You donât want to make him uncomfortable, but you also donât relish the idea of finding another place so late in the evening.
Charles, however, seems unfazed. He turns to you with a reassuring smile. âItâs up to you. We can stay or keep looking.â
You bite your lip, weighing your options. The day has been long, and youâre both exhausted. Finally, you nod. âLetâs stay.â
The innkeeper hands Charles the key, and he leads you upstairs to the room. Itâs cozy, with a low ceiling and a large, comfortable-looking bed dominating the space. Thereâs a small window overlooking the garden, where the last rays of sunlight are casting everything in a golden hue.
You drop your bags by the door, glancing at the bed. Itâs big enough for two, but the thought of sharing it with Charles makes your heart flutter nervously.
Charles seems to pick up on your hesitation. âI can sleep on the floor,â he offers, his tone gentle. âItâs no trouble.â
You shake your head quickly. âNo, donât be ridiculous. Iâm not making you sleep on the floor.â
He hesitates for a moment, then nods, his expression softening. âOkay, if youâre sure.â
You both get ready for bed, the atmosphere between you growing more relaxed. When you finally climb under the covers, you can feel the warmth radiating from Charlesâ side of the bed, a comforting presence in the quiet room.
For a while, you both lie there in silence, the only sound the faint rustling of the sheets as you try to find a comfortable position. Despite your earlier nerves, you find yourself inching closer to him, drawn by the sense of safety he brings.
âGoodnight,â you whisper, your voice barely audible in the darkness.
âGoodnight,â he replies, his voice soft.
You close your eyes, letting out a slow breath. And then, almost without thinking, you shift closer, until your head is resting on his shoulder, your body curled against his side.
Charles tenses for a moment, and you almost pull away, but then his arm wraps around you, holding you gently. He doesnât say anything, but the way he holds you is enough. Itâs not romantic or suggestive â just a simple, comforting embrace that makes you feel less alone.
You relax into his warmth, feeling a sense of peace wash over you that you havenât felt in what feels like forever. The road trip, the bucket list, everything fades into the background as you allow yourself to just be in this moment.
For the first time in a long time, you feel like youâre exactly where youâre supposed to be. And as you drift off to sleep, wrapped in the safety of Charlesâ arms, you canât help but think that maybe â just maybe â youâre starting to heal.
***
The morning sun filters through the curtains, casting a golden hue over the small inn room. You stir slightly, the warmth of the shared bed coaxing you into a slow wakefulness. Charles is still beside you, his breath even, his face relaxed in sleep. Itâs almost surreal how peaceful this moment feels, as if the world outside has paused just for the two of you.
You turn onto your side, propping yourself up on an elbow, and watch him for a moment. The lines of worry that usually crease his brow are gone, replaced by a serenity that makes him seem younger, almost boyish. You wonder how he manages to carry so much weight on his shoulders and still offer you comfort, still make you feel like youâre the only person in the world who matters.
The faint clatter of dishes from downstairs pulls you out of your thoughts. You slip out of bed carefully, not wanting to wake him just yet. The cool wooden floor sends a shiver up your spine as you pad over to the small window. The view outside is a picturesque scene of rolling hills and a cobblestone street winding through the tiny village. Itâs the kind of place that feels untouched by time, where life moves at a slower, more deliberate pace.
A soft knock on the door startles you. You glance back at Charles, who stirs but doesnât wake. Quietly, you open the door to find the innkeeper, a woman in her late fifties with a kind face and a warm smile.
âGood morning,â she whispers. âBreakfast is ready whenever you and your friend are.â
You nod, offering her a smile in return. âThank you. Weâll be down soon.â
She leaves you with a slight nod, and you close the door softly behind her. Turning back to the bed, you see Charles is awake now, blinking away sleep. He stretches lazily, his eyes finding yours, a sleepy smile tugging at the corners of his mouth.
âGood morning,â he says, voice rough with sleep.
âMorning,â you reply, feeling a warmth spread through your chest. âThe innkeeper says breakfast is ready.â
He nods, pushing himself up into a sitting position. âIâll be down in a minute. You go ahead.â
You hesitate for a moment, but then you nod and head downstairs. The small dining area is cozy, with a fireplace crackling softly in one corner. The smell of freshly baked bread and brewed coffee fills the air, making your stomach rumble in anticipation. You take a seat at one of the wooden tables, the innkeeper greeting you with a pot of coffee.
âIs it just the two of you?â She asks, pouring you a cup.
âYes, just us,â you say, taking a grateful sip. The warmth of the coffee spreads through you, waking you up fully.
âSuch a lovely young man,â she comments, a twinkle in her eye. âYouâre lucky to have someone like him.â
You smile at that, unsure how to respond. Are you lucky? It feels strange to think of Charles in that way when the loss of your husband is still so fresh, still so raw. But you canât deny that Charles has brought something into your life that you didnât know you needed â comfort, companionship, and maybe even a little bit of hope.
Charles appears a few minutes later, his hair slightly tousled from sleep, but he looks more awake now. He greets the innkeeper with a polite nod before taking the seat across from you.
âDid you sleep well?â He asks, reaching for a piece of the fresh bread.
âI did,â you admit. âAnd you?â
âBetter than I have in a while,â he says, and thereâs a sincerity in his tone that makes you believe him.
The innkeeper returns with plates of food â scrambled eggs, crispy bacon, fresh fruit, and more of the bread youâve already sampled. Itâs simple, but itâs the kind of breakfast that warms you from the inside out, reminding you of the comforts of home.
As you both eat in companionable silence, Charles looks up at you, a thoughtful expression on his face. âHave you ever been to Monaco?â
You pause, caught off guard by the question. âNo, I havenât. Iâve heard itâs beautiful, though.â
âIt is,â he agrees, a smile playing on his lips. âWould you like to go?â
You laugh softly, shaking your head. âOf course I would, but realistically, I know I probably never will. Life has a way of getting in the way of things like that.â
Charlesâ smile widens, his eyes glinting with mischief. âThatâs not true at all, actually.â
You raise an eyebrow, not sure where heâs going with this. âOh? And whyâs that?â
âBecause my mother is expecting us for dinner tonight,â he says casually, as if itâs the most normal thing in the world.
You stare at him, unsure if you heard him correctly. âWait, what?â
He chuckles, clearly enjoying your reaction. âYou heard me. Weâre going to Monaco. My mother has been asking about you, actually.â
Your mouth opens and closes a few times, trying to find the words. âCharles, I ... I donât know what to say. Thatâs ... thatâs incredibly sweet, but I donât want to impose. And we havenât exactly been planning on going to Monaco.â
âYouâre not imposing,â Charles insists, reaching across the table to take your hand. âSheâs already expecting us, and it would make her really happy to meet you.â
You look down at his hand, feeling the warmth of his touch seep into your skin. Thereâs something about the way he says it, so earnest and sincere, that makes it hard to say no.
âAre you sure?â You ask, your voice soft.
âAbsolutely,â he says, squeezing your hand gently. âLetâs make the most of this adventure, okay?â
You take a deep breath, nodding slowly. âOkay. Letâs go to Monaco.â
The drive to Monaco is nothing short of breathtaking. The Ferrari roars to life as Charles maneuvers it expertly along the winding coastal roads, the Mediterranean Sea sparkling to your right. The windows are down, and the wind whips through your hair, carrying with it the scent of saltwater and the promise of something new.
Charles hums along to the music playing softly through the speakers, glancing over at you every so often with a contented smile. Thereâs something about the way he looks at you that makes your heart flutter, and you find yourself smiling back, unable to resist the infectious energy that seems to surround him.
When you finally cross the border into Monaco, it feels like stepping into another world. The city is a blend of old-world charm and modern luxury, with grand buildings perched on cliffs overlooking the sea and sleek yachts bobbing in the harbor. The streets are bustling with life, but thereâs an air of sophistication and elegance that sets it apart from anywhere else youâve been.
Charles navigates the narrow streets with ease, eventually pulling up in front of an apartment building that exudes quiet elegance. He cuts the engine and turns to you with a smile. âWeâre here.â
You take a deep breath, your nerves suddenly kicking in. âIâm nervous,â you admit.
Charles reaches over and takes your hand, his thumb brushing gently over your knuckles. âYou have nothing to be nervous about. Sheâs going to love you.â
You nod, trying to calm the butterflies in your stomach as you step out of the car. Charles comes around to your side, taking your hand once more as he leads you up the steps to the building. The door opens with a soft creak, and you find yourself in a beautifully decorated foyer, the scent of fresh flowers filling the air.
Charles leads you down a hallway, stopping in front of a door with a gold number plate. He looks at you, a reassuring smile on his face, before knocking softly.
The door opens almost immediately, and there stands a woman who can only be Pascale. Sheâs petite, with kind eyes and a warm smile that reaches all the way to her eyes. Her face lights up when she sees Charles, and she immediately pulls him into a hug.
âCharles, mon chĂ©ri,â she says, her voice filled with affection.
Charles hugs her back, and you can see the love between them in the way they hold each other, the way they speak without words. When they finally pull apart, Pascale turns her attention to you, her smile softening even more.
âAnd you must be Y/N,â she says, stepping forward to embrace you as well. Her hug is warm and comforting, the kind of hug that only a mother could give.
You hug her back, feeling a wave of emotion wash over you. Itâs been so long since youâve felt this kind of maternal warmth, and it brings tears to your eyes. But theyâre good tears, the kind that remind you that maybe, just maybe, youâre starting to heal.
âItâs so lovely to finally meet you,â Pascale says, pulling back to look at you. âCharles has told me so much about you.â
âAll good things, I hope,â you reply with a small smile, trying to compose yourself.
Pascale laughs softly, a musical sound that fills the hallway. âOnly the best.â
Charles takes your hand again, giving it a reassuring squeeze. âShall we?â
Pascale nods, stepping back to allow you both inside. As you step into the warm, inviting space, you canât help but feel a sense of belonging. For the first time in a long time, you feel like youâre exactly where youâre supposed to be.
***
Pascaleâs apartment is cozy, filled with warm lighting and the comforting smell of something delicious simmering in the kitchen. Youâre still standing by the door when she pulls you into a tight hug, her embrace firm yet gentle, and in that moment, you feel a wave of unexpected comfort.
âWelcome, mon ange,â Pascale murmurs in your ear, her voice soft and motherly, the kind you haven't felt in so long. âIâve been looking forward to meeting you.â
You blink back the tears that suddenly prick at your eyes. Thereâs a part of you thatâs still surprised to be here, in Monaco, of all places, with Charles â let alone meeting his mother. âThank you,â you manage to say, feeling a little overwhelmed by her warmth.
Charles gives you an encouraging smile as he slips out of his shoes, motioning for you to do the same. âCome on,â he says lightly, âI told Maman weâd help with dinner.â
You glance at Pascale, whoâs already moving toward the kitchen. âOh, I donât want to be any trouble.â
âNonsense,â Pascale calls over her shoulder. âYouâre our guest, and in this house, guests are family.â
Charles nudges you playfully. âShe means it. Better get in there before she tries to do everything herself.â
You follow them into the kitchen, trying to shake off the nerves that have settled in your stomach. The space is as welcoming as the rest of the apartment, filled with the sounds of something sizzling on the stove and the scent of fresh herbs. Pascale is already at work, her hands moving deftly as she chops vegetables with the ease of someone whoâs done this a thousand times.
Charles rolls up his sleeves and grabs a cutting board, handing you one as well. âHere,â he says with a grin, âletâs show Maman what weâve got.â
Youâre not much of a cook, but thereâs something about the way Charles and Pascale move around the kitchen that makes you feel at ease. Before long, the three of you are working together, chopping and stirring and laughing as Pascale regales you with stories from Charlesâ childhood.
âHe was always getting into trouble,â she says with a fond smile, passing you a bowl of something that smells divine. âClimbing trees, chasing after the neighborhood cats ...â
âMaman,â Charles groans, but heâs grinning, his eyes sparkling with that same mischievous glint youâve seen more than once.
You chuckle, picturing a younger Charles, wild and full of energy. Itâs easy to see where he gets his charm â Pascale is a force of nature, and the love she has for her son is palpable in every word, every look she sends his way.
As dinner comes together, you find yourself opening up to Pascale in a way you didnât expect. She asks about your life, your past, and though itâs hard to talk about your husband, something about her gentle demeanor makes it easier.
âIâm sorry,â you say at one point, when the conversation dips into quieter territory. âI didnât mean to bring the mood down.â
Pascale shakes her head, her eyes full of understanding. âYou didnât, dear. Itâs important to talk about the people weâve loved and lost. It keeps them with us.â
Her words resonate with you, and for a moment, you just stand there, letting the warmth of the kitchen and the comfort of their presence wash over you.
âYour husband,â Pascale says after a beat, her voice soft. âHe sounds like he was a wonderful man.â
âHe was,â you whisper, your throat tightening with emotion. âHe really was.â
Pascale reaches out, covering your hand with hers. âAnd you,â she says gently, âare an incredible woman.â
You donât know what to say to that, so you just nod, swallowing back the tears that threaten to spill over. Charles catches your eye from across the kitchen, giving you a small, encouraging smile, and you feel a surge of gratitude for him â for bringing you here, for making you feel like youâre not alone.
Dinner is a simple affair, but itâs one of the best meals youâve had in a long time. The conversation flows easily, and for a while, it feels like youâre part of something youâve been missing for so long â a family.
At some point during the evening, you and Pascale find yourselves alone at the table. Charles has stepped out to take a call, leaving you with Pascale, who has been watching you with a thoughtful expression.
âYou know,â she begins, her voice gentle, âwhen Charles told me about you, I could see how much he cares. Heâs a good boy, my Charles, but he doesnât let people in easily.â
You feel your cheeks warm under her scrutiny. âHeâs been ... incredibly kind to me,â you say softly. âI donât know what I would have done without him.â
Pascale nods, as if she already knows. âHeâs been through a lot, just like you. Losing his father, and then Jules ... it changed him.â
Thereâs a sadness in her eyes, and you realize that, like you, sheâs carrying her own grief. âIâm sorry,â you say, the words feeling inadequate. âI didnât mean to bring up-â
âDonât apologize,â Pascale interrupts, reaching across the table to take your hand. âItâs good to talk about these things, to remember. Charles ... he doesnât talk about it much, but I know itâs there, always.â
You nod, understanding all too well. The weight of loss is something that never truly goes away; it just becomes a part of you.
âI see a lot of his father in him,â Pascale continues, her voice wistful. âThat determination, that drive to be the best. But itâs more than that. Heâs got a good heart, my Charles. He cares deeply, even if he doesnât always show it.â
You smile, thinking of the way Charles has been with you â patient, understanding, always knowing just what to say to make you feel better. âHe does,â you agree. âHeâs ... heâs been more than I could have ever asked for.â
Pascaleâs gaze softens, and for a moment, she just looks at you, as if sheâs seeing something sheâs been hoping to find. âIâm glad he has you,â she says finally. âI think youâre good for each other.â
Youâre not sure how to respond to that, so you just nod, feeling a strange mix of emotions swirling inside you. Itâs too soon to think about what all of this means, but thereâs a part of you that canât help but wonder where this is going â what it could become.
Before you can dwell on it too much, Charles returns, his usual easygoing demeanor back in place. âEverything okay?â He asks, glancing between you and Pascale.
âPerfect,â Pascale replies with a smile, but thereâs something in her eyes that makes you think she knows more than sheâs letting on.
The rest of the evening passes in a comfortable blur, with more stories and laughter, and by the time youâre getting ready to leave, you feel like youâve known Pascale for much longer than just a few hours.
As youâre putting on your coat, Pascale pulls Charles aside, and you see her lean in close, whispering something to him. He nods, his expression serious, and when he glances back at you, thereâs something unreadable in his eyes.
âWhat did she say?â You ask when youâre finally alone with Charles, walking back to the car.
He smiles, but it doesnât quite reach his eyes. âJust that she likes you,â he says simply. âA lot.â
You feel a warmth spread through your chest at his words, but thereâs also a flicker of something else â something that feels a lot like hope.
âSheâs wonderful,â you say honestly. âThank you for bringing me here.â
Charles stops walking, turning to face you. âYou donât have to thank me,â he says softly. âIâm just glad you came.â
Thereâs a moment of silence, and then he reaches out, brushing a strand of hair away from your face. âYouâre an incredible person, you know that?â
You blink, taken aback by the intensity in his gaze. âIâm just trying to get by,â you admit quietly.
He nods, his hand lingering on your cheek for just a moment longer. âArenât we all?â
You donât know how to respond to that, so you just give him a small smile, hoping he understands.
You reach the car, and Charles opens the door for you, his hand resting lightly on your back as you slide inside. Thereâs something different in the air between you, something unspoken but undeniably there, and as you drive away from Pascaleâs apartment, you canât help but wonder what it all means.
What you do know, though, is that youâre not alone anymore â not really. Charles is here, and for the first time in a long time, you feel like youâre exactly where youâre supposed to be.
***
The drive from Pascaleâs apartment to Charlesâ place is filled with comfortable silence, punctuated by the occasional hum of the engine and the soft tunes playing on the carâs stereo. You find yourself stealing glances at Charles every now and then, noticing how relaxed he seems, one hand resting casually on the steering wheel, the other is lightly to the rhythm of the music. His calmness was contagious, and you lean back in your seat, letting out a breath you hadnât realized you were holding.
When the car finally pulls into an underground parking garage, Charles cuts the engine and turns to you with a soft smile. âReady to meet Leo?â He asks, his tone almost teasing.
âLeo?â You echo, raising an eyebrow.
âMy dog,â Charles clarifies, his smile growing. âHeâs ... enthusiastic, to say the least.â
You laugh lightly. âI think I can handle enthusiastic.â
Charles leads you to the elevator, and a few moments later, you are stepping into a sleek, modern apartment. It is tastefully decorated, with large windows that offer a stunning view of the city. Before you could take in all the details, a high-pitched bark echoes through the space, and a small beige dachshund comes skidding around the corner, his tiny legs moving at lightning speed as he raced toward Charles.
âLeo!â Charles greets the dog with a wide grin, crouching down to scoop him up. The dachshund wiggles excitedly in his arms, his tail wagging furiously. âThis is Y/N,â Charles introduces, turning Leoâs attention to you. âBe nice.â
You kneel down, and Leo wasted no time leaping from Charlesâ arms to yours, showering your face with a flurry of enthusiastic licks. You canât help but laugh as you try to fend off the affectionate assault, gently rubbing the little dogâs back.
âHeâs adorable,â you say, looking up at Charles with a wide smile. But when your eyes meet his, you noticed the way he was watching you â softly, intently, as if seeing you in a new light. It was the kind of look you hadnât seen since ... since James. The thought hits you with a sudden pang, but there is no sadness in it. Just a quiet, tender acknowledgment of the past and the present.
Charles seems to catch himself, clearing his throat as he straightens up. âIâm glad you like him,â he says, his voice a touch quieter now. âHeâs been good company.â
You stand, Leo still wriggling happily in your arms. âI can see why.â
Charles smiles again, that same gentle warmth in his eyes. âCome on, let me show you to your room. I had one of the guest rooms made up for you.â
You follow him down a short hallway, the soft pads of Leoâs paws following close behind. Charles pushes open a door, revealing a cozy, well-appointed room with a large bed, a dresser, and a window that looks out over the city skyline. Your bags are neatly placed at the foot of the bed.
âI hope itâs comfortable enough,â Charles says, glancing around the room as if assessing it himself.
âItâs perfect,â you assure him, setting Leo down on the floor. The little dog immediately hops onto the bed, circling a few times before settling into a comfortable spot.
Charles chuckles. âLooks like youâve already got company.â
You smile, sitting on the edge of the bed and giving Leo another affectionate pat. âHeâs a good boy.â
Thereâs a pause, comfortable and full of unspoken things. Charles lingers by the door, as if he wants to say something but is weighing his words.
âIf you need anything,â he finally says, âmy roomâs just down the hall. Donât hesitate to knock.â
You nod, appreciating the offer more than you could put into words. âThank you, Charles. For everything.â
His gaze softens, and for a moment, it seems like he might say something more. But instead, he simply nods, giving you a small, almost bashful smile before stepping back into the hallway.
âGoodnight, Y/N,â he says, his voice warm and sincere.
âGoodnight, Charles.â
As the door closes behind him, youâre left alone in the quiet room, Leoâs soft breathing the only sound. You sit there for a moment, letting everything that had happened over the past few days wash over you. The unexpected kindness of a stranger who is becoming so much more, the gentle way he helped you navigate the grief that still lingered like a shadow ... and the way he looked at you, as if he saw something in you that youâd almost forgotten was there.
With a deep breath, you lie back on the bed, Leo curling up beside you. The city lights twinkle through the window, casting a soft glow across the room. You stare up at the ceiling, feeling a sense of peace that had eluded you for so long. Maybe, just maybe, you are beginning to heal.
And as you drift off to sleep, you find yourself thinking of the days to come, and the possibility of something new and beautiful growing from the ashes of what youâd lost.
***
The next morning, Charles is practically buzzing with excitement as he leads you out of his apartment and towards the harbor. His hand is warm and sure around yours, and you canât help but smile at his enthusiasm.
The sky is a brilliant shade of blue, the kind of color that seems to only exist in this part of the world, with the sun glinting off the water and the scent of salt in the air. The harbor is alive with activity, the gentle hum of boats rocking in the marina, the occasional laughter of tourists, and the distant sounds of a city going about its day.
âIâm taking you to my favorite spot,â Charles says, his voice light and cheerful. âItâs a bit of a hidden gem. The tourists donât usually find it, but the locals love it.â
You laugh softly, looking up at him as you walk side by side. âSounds perfect. Iâm always up for good food.â
Charles grins at that, his eyes twinkling with a boyish charm. âTrust me, you wonât be disappointed.â
The walk is leisurely, and as you near the harbor, you notice how Charles slows his pace, as if wanting to savor every moment. The way he talks about Monaco, you can tell how much he loves it here, how much this place means to him. Itâs like seeing the city through his eyes, and you find yourself appreciating the little details more â the old stone buildings, the narrow streets, the way the sunlight reflects off the water.
The brunch spot is tucked away, a small, unassuming place with a few tables outside, shaded by a striped awning. The smell of fresh coffee and baked goods wafts through the air, and you immediately feel at home. Charles greets the owner like an old friend, exchanging a few words in rapid French before leading you to a cozy table by the window.
You sit down, and Charles orders for the both of you â pastries, fresh fruit, eggs cooked just the way you like them, and, of course, coffee.
As you sip your coffee and nibble on a flaky croissant, you take in the surroundings. The cafĂ© is quaint and charming, with wooden tables and mismatched chairs, the kind of place where you could easily spend hours just watching the world go by. Itâs clear that Charles has a deep connection to this place, and you feel honored that heâs sharing it with you.
âThis place,â you say, setting your coffee cup down, âitâs perfect.â
Charles smiles softly, his gaze lingering on your face. âI knew youâd like it.â
For a while, the two of you talk about everything and nothing â his childhood in Monaco, your favorite books, the little things that make life sweet. Thereâs a comfort in the conversation, a sense of ease that comes from being with someone who understands you, who doesnât need you to be anything other than yourself.
After brunch, Charles suggests a walk along the harbor. The day is warm, the sun high in the sky, and as you walk, you can feel the tension of the past few days begin to melt away. The conversation flows easily, laughter coming more often than not, and you realize how much youâve missed this â missed feeling alive, missed the simple pleasure of being in the moment.
But as the afternoon wears on, the sky begins to darken. You glance up, noticing the heavy clouds gathering overhead, and before you can say anything, the first raindrop falls.
Charles looks up at the sky, a grin spreading across his face. âLooks like weâre in for a bit of rain.â
You laugh, holding out your hand as the raindrops begin to fall faster, harder. âA bit? This looks like a full-on storm.â
The rain comes quickly, turning from a light drizzle to a steady downpour in a matter of moments. The tourists around you scatter, seeking shelter under awnings and in shops, but Charles doesnât move. Instead, he looks at you, his expression playful, his eyes daring.
âCome on,â he says, taking your hand again, this time with more urgency. âLetâs do something crazy.â
Youâre about to ask what he means, but then you see the look in his eyes, and you know. You know exactly what heâs thinking.
Without another word, he pulls you into the open, right into the middle of the empty street. The rain is cold against your skin, soaking through your clothes in seconds, but you donât care. You donât care about anything in this moment except the feeling of the rain on your face, the sound of Charlesâ laughter, the way he spins you around like youâre in the middle of some grand ballroom instead of a rain-soaked street.
You let go. You let go of all the sadness, all the pain, all the fear. You let go and dance, not caring if you look silly, not caring if anyone is watching. Itâs just you and Charles and the rain.
For the first time in a long time, you feel free.
And then, without even thinking, you lean in, and Charles is there, meeting you halfway. His lips are warm and soft against yours, a stark contrast to the cold rain, and you can feel the gentle pressure of his hands on your waist, holding you close, grounding you in this moment.
The kiss is slow, tender, as if Charles is trying to convey everything heâs feeling without saying a word. Thereâs a sense of rightness in it, like this is where youâre supposed to be, like this is what youâve been missing.
When you finally pull back, youâre both breathless, the rain still pouring down around you, but neither of you seems to care. You look up at Charles, his hair plastered to his forehead, water dripping down his face, and you canât help but smile.
âIâve never danced in the rain before,â you say, your voice barely audible over the sound of the downpour.
Charles grins, his thumb brushing gently against your cheek. âNeither have I. But Iâm glad my first time was with you.â
You laugh softly, leaning your forehead against his. âYouâre crazy, you know that?â
He chuckles, his arms tightening around you. âMaybe a little. But sometimes the best things in life are a little crazy.â
You close your eyes, letting the moment wash over you, feeling the weight of the past few weeks slowly lifting off your shoulders. For the first time since you lost James, you feel like youâre truly living again. And itâs because of Charles.
The rain shows no signs of stopping, but you donât care. You could stand here forever, in this moment, with Charlesâs arms around you and the rain falling like a blessing from the sky.
But eventually, the cold starts to seep into your bones, and Charles pulls back, his hands still on your waist, his eyes searching yours.
âLetâs get out of the rain,â he says softly. âWe donât want to catch a cold.â
You nod, reluctantly stepping out of his embrace, and together you make your way back towards the apartment, the rain still falling around you, but your heart feeling lighter than it has in months.
As you walk, Charles slips his hand into yours again, and you glance over at him, your heart swelling with gratitude. Youâre not sure whatâs happening between you and Charles, but for the first time, youâre not afraid of it. Youâre not afraid to see where this might go.
When you reach the apartment, youâre both soaked to the bone, your clothes clinging uncomfortably to your skin, but youâre laughing, unable to stop the joy bubbling up inside you.
Charles unlocks the door and ushers you inside, his eyes twinkling with mischief. âI think we might need to dry off a bit.â
You laugh, nodding in agreement as you look around the familiar space. Leo is waiting by the door, his tail wagging furiously as he barks excitedly, clearly not pleased that you both got caught in the rain without him.
Charles crouches down, rubbing Leo behind the ears. âHey, baby. We didnât mean to leave you out of the fun.â
Leo licks Charlesâs face enthusiastically before trotting over to you, looking up with big, expectant eyes. You canât help but smile as you reach down to pet him, feeling a warmth in your chest that has nothing to do with the rain.
Charles stands, his eyes soft as he watches you with Leo. âLetâs get you some dry clothes,â he says gently, leading you down the hall.
You follow him, feeling a sense of peace settle over you. Thereâs something about being here, with Charles, that feels right. Like maybe, just maybe, youâre exactly where youâre supposed to be.
And as Charles hands you a towel and one of his oversized shirts, you realize that maybe youâre finally ready to start letting go of the past and embracing whatever the future holds. With Charles by your side, it feels like anything is possible.
As you dry off and change into the warm, comfortable clothes Charles gave you, you canât help but smile at the thought. Maybe this isnât just about ticking off items on a bucket list. Maybe itâs about finding yourself again. And maybe, just maybe, itâs about finding something more.
***
You fall asleep that night, still feeling the warmth of Charlesâ arms wrapped around you as he whispered a soft goodnight. His gentle kiss, tentative yet filled with an unspoken promise, lingers on your lips even as you drift into slumber.
But in your dreams, the world shifts.
You find yourself standing in a place both familiar and strange â a field of golden wheat, the sun setting in the distance, casting a warm, orange glow across the horizon. The sky is endless, blending into shades of pink and purple, as if the heavens themselves were painted with the softest brushstrokes.
And there he is. James.
Heâs standing a few feet away, his back to you, hands in his pockets, the way he always used to stand when he was deep in thought. The wind rustles the wheat around him, and for a moment, you just watch him, your heart aching with the longing that never really goes away.
âJames ...â Your voice is soft, trembling, almost afraid that speaking his name will shatter the dream.
He turns slowly, his familiar smile, that same one that used to make you feel like everything would be okay, spreads across his face. Heâs exactly as you remember him â tousled brown hair, slightly crooked nose from that time he tried to impress you by skiing down a slope far too steep, and those eyes, those deep, warm eyes that always seemed to understand you better than you understood yourself.
âHey, you,â he says, his voice carrying the same teasing lilt that always made you laugh, no matter how bad your day had been.
You move towards him, your feet sinking into the soft earth, but it feels as though the distance between you never changes. The closer you try to get, the farther he seems. âI miss you,â you say, and your voice cracks under the weight of the words. âI miss you so much, Jamie.â
âI know,â he says, and his voice is soft, understanding. âI miss you too, but Iâm here now.â
You finally reach him, your fingers itching to touch him, to feel his warmth, but thereâs a hesitance within you, a fear that touching him will break the fragile illusion. âIâm scared,â you confess, the tears that have been gathering in your eyes finally spilling over. âIâm scared of moving on, of letting go ⊠of forgetting you.â
James takes a step closer, and suddenly, heâs right in front of you. You can feel his warmth now, the comforting presence that had always been your anchor. He lifts a hand, wiping away your tears with the pad of his thumb, just like he used to.
âYou wonât forget me,â he says gently, his voice a soothing balm to your wounded heart. âYou carry me with you, always. Iâm a part of you, just like youâre a part of me.â
You close your eyes, leaning into his touch, memorizing the feel of him, the sound of his voice. âBut it feels like Iâm betraying you ⊠with Charles.â
James chuckles softly, a sound that vibrates through you, filling you with a warmth that you hadnât felt in so long. âCharles Leclerc, huh?â He steps back slightly, enough to meet your gaze fully. âNever knew you had a thing for fast cars and dangerous men.â
You canât help but smile through your tears. âHeâs ⊠different. Heâs kind, and patient, and he makes me feel ⊠alive again.â
âThatâs good, Y/N,â James says, his tone earnest, as if heâs trying to make you understand something crucial. âThatâs what I want for you. I donât want you to be stuck in the past, living with a ghost. I want you to live, to be happy, to love again.â
âBut you-â
âIâll always be with you,â he interrupts gently. âIâm not going anywhere. Iâm here,â he says, pressing a hand over your heart. âBut you need to let yourself be happy. You need to let yourself find love, even if itâs not with me.â
A sob escapes your lips, and you cover your mouth with your hand, trying to stifle the sound, but James pulls you into his arms, holding you close. âItâs okay,â he murmurs into your hair. âItâs okay to love someone else. I want you to. You deserve that.â
You bury your face in his chest, inhaling the scent thatâs so uniquely him â earthy and warm, like freshly cut grass on a summerâs day. âI donât know if I can,â you whisper. âIt feels like losing you all over again.â
âYouâre not losing me,â he reassures, pulling back just enough to look into your eyes. âYouâre gaining something beautiful. And if youâre worried about my approval ...â He grins, that mischievous glint in his eye that you always loved. âI mean, heâs no Max Verstappen, but Charles Leclerc? I guess heâs almost good enough for you.â
A laugh bubbles up from your chest, even as tears continue to fall. Itâs absurd, really, this moment, this conversation, but itâs exactly what you needed.
âI canât believe you just said that,â you murmur, shaking your head with a small smile.
James shrugs, a carefree gesture that was so him. âWhat can I say? I always had a soft spot for Max. But Charles ⊠heâs got potential. Just ⊠give him a chance, okay? For me?â
You nod, even though the idea terrifies you. âIâll try,â you whisper. âFor you.â
James smiles, a sad, but proud smile, and he leans down to press a kiss to your forehead, the same way he used to when he wanted to comfort you without words. âThatâs all I ask. And Y/N ... donât wait too long, okay? Life is too short for that.â
âI wonât,â you promise, even though your heart is heavy with the thought of truly moving on.
James takes a step back, his form beginning to fade into the golden light of the sunset. âI love you, Y/N. I always will. But itâs time for you to live again.â
âGoodbye, Jamie,â you say, your voice trembling as he becomes more and more ethereal, like a shadow dissolving in the light. âI love you.â
He smiles one last time, his figure almost completely faded now. âAnd I love you. Always.â
The dream fades, and youâre left standing in that field of golden wheat alone, the sun sinking below the horizon, casting the world into twilight. But thereâs a peace in your heart that you havenât felt in a long time, a quiet acceptance that maybe, just maybe, itâs okay to start letting go.
When you wake, your cheeks are damp with tears, but thereâs a soft smile on your lips. You lie there for a moment, staring at the ceiling, replaying the dream in your mind, feeling the weight of Jamesâ words settle in your heart.
You know what he said is true. You know itâs what he would want. And you know, deep down, that itâs time to start allowing yourself to heal, to open up, and to let someone else in.
And as you think of Charles, of his patience, his kindness, his quiet understanding, you canât help but feel a tiny spark of hope flickering in your chest â a hope that maybe, just maybe, you can find love again.
***
The morning light filtered through the curtains of Charlesâ dining room, casting a soft, golden hue over the room. You sit at the table, trying to focus on the breakfast in front of you â a selection of pastries, fresh fruit, and coffee that Charles had lovingly laid out. Yet, the thoughts swirling in your mind make it hard to concentrate. Charles sits across from you, his eyes occasionally flicking up to meet yours, a small, contented smile playing on his lips.
The memories of the past few days are almost surreal: the unexpected road trip, the rain-soaked dance that ended with your first kiss, and the way Charles held you afterward, like you were the only thing in the world that mattered. Itâs been a whirlwind, but a beautiful one. And yet, as you take a sip of coffee, reality nudges its way back into your thoughts.
âI ... I should probably head back home soon,â you say, your voice hesitant, as if saying the words might make them less real. âI need to get back to work.â
The air in the room shifts. Charlesâ smile fades just a little, replaced by a look of understanding, tinged with something you canât quite place. Sadness? Disappointment? He sets down his coffee cup, his fingers playing with the handle as if it could offer him some guidance on what to say next.
âOf course,â he replies, his tone gentle, though you can hear the effort it takes to keep it light. âYou have responsibilities, a life back home ...â
Thereâs a pause, the kind that stretches a moment into something heavier, more significant. The silence is thick, filled with the unspoken truth that neither of you wants to confront: this bubble of time youâve been living in, where only the two of you exist, is about to burst.
âI like you,â you blurt out, the words tumbling out faster than you can stop them. They hang in the air, raw and vulnerable.
Charles looks up, his eyes locking onto yours. âI like you too,â he says, his voice low, steady, and filled with something that makes your heart skip a beat.
You both sit there for a moment, staring at each other, the weight of your mutual confession settling between you like a third presence at the table. Itâs terrifying and exhilarating all at once.
âI want to see where this goes,â you continue, your voice trembling slightly as you try to gather your thoughts. âBut I donât know how ... I mean, youâre always traveling for the races, and I-â
âCome with me,â Charles interrupts, his voice firm, almost urgent. âTo the next race. And the one after that. I donât want this to be just a beautiful memory. I want you there with me, every step of the way.â
His words hit you like a wave, washing over the fears and doubts that had been quietly gnawing at the back of your mind. The idea of uprooting your life, of stepping into his world, is daunting â but the thought of not being with him is even more unbearable.
You take a deep breath, trying to steady your racing thoughts. âAre you sure?â You ask, your voice barely above a whisper. âI donât want to get in the way, or make things complicated.â
Charles leans forward, his hand reaching out to cover yours. His touch is warm, grounding. âYou wouldnât be in the way. I want this. I want you. And if it gets complicated, then weâll figure it out together.â
The sincerity in his eyes is almost overwhelming. Youâve spent so long guarding your heart, protecting yourself from the pain of losing someone again, that the idea of opening up to love, to Charles, feels both terrifying and exhilarating.
âTwo and a half weeks,â he continues, a hopeful smile tugging at the corners of his lips. âThatâs when the next race is. Come with me. Weâll have more time to figure this out, whatever this is.â
You nod slowly, your heart pounding in your chest. âOkay,â you say, your voice firming up with the decision. âIâll come with you.â
A bright, relieved smile breaks across Charlesâ face, and in that moment, you know youâve made the right choice. Whatever happens, youâll face it together. The thought is both comforting and thrilling.
Charles stands up, pulling you gently to your feet. âI think we should seal this decision properly,â he says, his tone light, teasing.
You raise an eyebrow, trying to keep the mood from becoming too serious. âAnd how do you propose we do that?â
He doesnât answer with words. Instead, he steps closer, his hands coming to rest on your hips as he leans in, capturing your lips with his in a soft, lingering kiss. Itâs different from the kiss you shared in the rain â this one is slower, more deliberate, filled with the promise of everything that could be. You melt into him, your hands sliding up to rest on his shoulders as you kiss him back, letting yourself get lost in the moment.
When you finally pull away, breathless and a little dizzy, Charles rests his forehead against yours, his eyes closed, a contented smile on his lips. âIâm really glad youâre coming with me,â he murmurs, his voice soft and full of emotion.
âSo am I,â you whisper back, your heart swelling with a mixture of hope and anticipation.
For the first time in a long time, you feel like youâre exactly where youâre supposed to be. And as you stand there in Charlesâ arms, the future doesnât seem so scary anymore. In fact, it looks pretty damn wonderful.
***
18 Months Later
The cemetery is quiet, a solemn stillness that wraps around you and Charles as you walk down the winding path lined with weathered tombstones and ancient trees. The sky above is a muted gray, the kind that seems to reflect the heavy emotions youâve been carrying with you.
Your hand is tightly clasped in Charlesâ, his grip firm and reassuring, but you can feel the slight tremor in his fingers. Heâs nervous, though he tries to hide it behind a small, gentle smile.
You havenât been here since the funeral, since that awful day when you laid James to rest. The thought of returning to this place has always felt too overwhelming, like reopening a wound that never fully healed. But now, over a year and a half later, youâre here again, and this time, youâre not alone.
You lead Charles to the spot where James is buried. Itâs a modest grave, marked by a simple headstone that bears his name, his dates, and a short inscription that never fails to bring tears to your eyes: Beloved husband, healer of hearts, taken too soon.
Charles lets go of your hand as you kneel in front of the grave, gently brushing away the few leaves that have settled on the stone. You trace Jamesâ name with your fingers, the cold granite grounding you in a way that words never could. Charles stands a few steps behind you, giving you space, but his presence is a comforting anchor in this sea of grief.
Youâre not sure how long you stay like that, silent and lost in memories, before you finally speak. âHi, James,â you whisper, your voice trembling. âIâm sorry it took me so long to come back. I-I brought someone with me. I think youâd like him.â You swallow the lump in your throat, tears slipping down your cheeks. âHis name is Charles. Heâs ... heâs very special to me. Youâd probably think heâs not good enough for me, but you were always a little biased.â
A small, bittersweet smile tugs at your lips as you glance back at Charles, whoâs watching you with a mixture of love and concern. âWould you ... would you mind giving us a moment?â Charles asks softly, stepping forward. âI â Iâd like to talk to James, if thatâs okay.â
You blink up at him, surprised by the request, but the earnestness in his eyes makes you nod. âOf course,â you murmur, rising to your feet. You lean in to kiss Charles on the cheek, squeezing his hand one last time before stepping away, giving him the privacy heâs asked for.
Charles waits until youâve moved a respectful distance away, then turns his attention to the grave. He takes a deep breath, crouching down so heâs at eye level with the headstone. He feels awkward, talking to a man heâs never met, a man who was such a huge part of your life. But he knows this is important, that he needs to do this â for you, for James, and for himself.
âHi, James,â Charles starts, his voice low and unsure. âI-I hope you donât mind me talking to you like this. Iâve heard so much about you, and I know how much you mean to her.â He pauses, running a hand through his hair, trying to find the right words. âI wanted to say thank you. Thank you for loving her the way you did, for making her so happy. She deserves that, you know? She deserves all the happiness in the world.â
Charlesâ throat tightens, and he has to blink back the tears threatening to spill over. He hadnât expected this to be so hard, hadnât expected to feel this intense connection to a man he never knew. âIâm ... Iâm going to propose to her,â he finally says, his voice shaking. âAnd I wanted to ask for your permission, if thatâs okay. I know I canât replace you, and I wouldnât want to. Youâll always be a part of her, and Iâll never try to take that away.â
He swallows hard, his heart pounding in his chest. âBut I love her, James. I love her so much, and I promise Iâll take care of her. Iâll do everything I can to make her happy, to make sure she feels loved every single day. I know she still loves you, and Iâm okay with that. Thereâs more than enough room in her heart for both of us.â
Charles reaches out, placing a hand on the cool stone of the headstone, as if trying to make a connection with the man resting beneath it. âWeâve been talking about her moving to Monaco with me soon,â he continues, his voice steadying. âAnd I promise you, sheâll have free reign of my private jet to visit you whenever she wants. Iâll make sure she never feels like she has to choose between us.â
He takes a deep breath, closing his eyes for a moment. âI hope thatâs okay with you, James. I hope ... I hope youâre at peace, wherever you are. And I hope you know that Iâm going to love her with everything I have. Iâll do my best to make her as happy as you did. Thank you for that.â
Charles stays there for a moment longer, his hand still resting on the gravestone, before he finally stands. He wipes at his eyes, surprised to find them wet with tears, and glances over at you. Youâre watching him, a mix of curiosity and love in your gaze, and he gives you a small, reassuring smile.
You walk back over to him, slipping your hand into his, and he squeezes it gently. âThank you,â you whisper, your voice thick with emotion. âI ... I donât know what you said, but thank you.â
Charles just nods, pulling you into a hug, holding you close as you both stand there in the quiet cemetery, the weight of your shared love and loss settling around you. Itâs not an easy moment, but itâs one that feels right, like a necessary step forward in the journey youâve been on together.
As you stand there in Charlesâ arms, you feel a sense of peace wash over you. You know that James would have approved, that he would have wanted you to find happiness again, to find love again. And now, with Charles by your side, you finally feel like you can do that.
Eventually, you both turn to leave, hand in hand, walking back down the path toward the cemetery gates. As you reach the car, you glance back one last time at Jamesâ grave, a soft smile on your lips. âGoodbye, Jamie,â you whisper. âThank you for everything. I love you.â
Charles opens the car door for you, and as you slide into the passenger seat, you feel a sense of closure, of new beginnings. Itâs not about moving on, you realize, but about moving forward â carrying the love youâve known with you into whatever comes next.
And as Charles drives away from the cemetery, his hand resting on your thigh, you know that whatever comes next, you wonât be facing it alone.
***
The reception hall is filled with soft, warm light, the kind that makes everyone look beautiful and the world seem perfect for just a moment. The clinking of glasses, the murmur of conversations, and the occasional burst of laughter create a background hum that feels almost comforting in its familiarity.
You stand at the edge of the room, looking out at the faces of friends and family, people who have watched you navigate the hardest years of your life and who are now here to celebrate this new chapter.
Charles is beside you, his hand resting gently on the small of your back, a touch so natural that it feels like it's always been there. When he smiles at you, there's a quiet understanding in his eyes, a love that has grown deep and steady, rooted in the soil of shared grief and the careful, tentative steps toward healing.
You know he can feel your nervousness â heâs always been able to read you so well â but thereâs no rush, no pressure. Just his presence, anchoring you as you take a deep breath and step forward to the microphone.
The room gradually quiets as people realize youâre about to speak. The lump in your throat feels almost too big to swallow, and for a moment, you think you might not be able to get the words out. But then you feel Charlesâ hand squeeze yours, a silent encouragement that you can do this, and suddenly, itâs easier to find your voice.
âThank you,â you begin, and your voice wavers a little, but itâs steady enough. âThank you all for being here today. I know that every bride says this, but it really does mean the world to us that youâre here to share this day with us.â
You glance at Charles, who is watching you with that same soft look he had when you first met Leo. His eyes are full of pride and love, and it gives you the strength to continue.
âMost of you know that today isnât just about celebrating the love that Charles and I share, but itâs also about honoring the past that brought us here,â you say, and you can see some people nodding, their smiles tinged with understanding. âA few years ago, I lost my husband, James. He was an incredible man â kind, compassionate, and so full of life. And when he passed, I didnât think Iâd ever be able to move on, let alone find love again.â
Your voice catches, and you have to pause to take another breath. The room is silent now, everyone hanging on your words.
âJames left me a letter,â you say, and thereâs a faint murmur as people who donât know the story lean in, intrigued. âIn that letter, he left me a bucket list of things he wanted me to experience, things he wished we could have done together but that he wanted me to do in his memory.â
You reach into your pocket and pull out the now well-worn piece of paper, carefully unfolding it as you speak. âThe last item on that list was to find love again.â
A few people gasp quietly, and you can see some wiping their eyes, moved by the weight of those words. You feel your own tears threatening to fall, but you blink them back, determined to finish what youâve started.
âFor a long time, I didnât think I could,â you admit, your voice thick with emotion. âI didnât think it was possible to let someone else into my heart after losing James. But then, I met Charles.â
You turn to look at him, and he smiles at you, a smile that is both gentle and reassuring. âCharles showed me that itâs okay to love again, that my heart is big enough to hold all the memories I have of James while still making room for new ones with him. Heâs been patient, understanding, and so, so kind. And I know that James would have loved him just as much as I do.â
Charlesâ eyes glisten with unshed tears, and when he squeezes your hand again, itâs not just to comfort you â itâs a shared moment of recognition, of understanding that this journey has been just as profound for him as it has been for you.
âI know that some people say you can only have one great love in a lifetime,â you continue, your voice growing steadier with each word. âBut I think Iâve been incredibly lucky, because Iâve had two.â
The room is filled with the sound of sniffles and soft murmurs of agreement. You can see your family, who has been there through it all, nodding and smiling through their tears.
âSo today, as we celebrate this new beginning, I want to take a moment to honor the man who brought us here. James, wherever you are, thank you. Thank you for loving me enough to let me go, for knowing that I needed to find happiness again. I know youâre here with us, in spirit, and I hope youâre proud.â
You pause, your heart heavy but full. âAnd to Charles, my Charlie ⊠thank you for being brave enough to love me, even when it wasnât easy. Thank you for showing me that itâs okay to hold on to the past while embracing the future. I promise to love you with all of my heart, forever and always.â
The room is silent for a long moment after you finish speaking, and then the applause begins â soft at first, then growing louder as people rise to their feet, clapping not just for you and Charles, but for the love that has brought you both here, and for the man who made it all possible.
Charles pulls you into a tight embrace, pressing a kiss to your temple as the applause swells around you. âI love you,â he whispers, and you can hear the emotion in his voice. âThank you for sharing that with everyone. It was perfect.â
âI love you too,â you whisper back, your voice thick with tears. âAnd thank you, Charlie. For everything.â
The rest of the night is a blur of laughter, dancing, and celebration. But the memory of your speech, of standing up in front of everyone and sharing your heart so openly, will stay with you forever. And as you and Charles step onto the dance floor for your first dance as husband and wife, you feel a sense of peace, knowing that James is watching over you both, smiling as you take this next step forward together.
The music begins to play, a soft, romantic melody that wraps around you like a warm embrace. Charles pulls you closer, his arms around your waist as you sway together, and for the first time in a long time, you feel complete. Itâs not that the pain of losing James has disappeared â it never will â but it has softened, and in its place, there is a new kind of love, one that is just as strong, just as true.
As you dance, you rest your head against Charlesâ chest, listening to the steady beat of his heart. The guests fade into the background, and itâs just the two of you, moving together in perfect harmony. You know that this moment, this dance, is the beginning of a new chapter, one that you never imagined you would have, but one that you are so grateful for.
When the song ends, Charles lifts your chin with his finger, his eyes searching yours. âYou okay?â He asks softly, his voice filled with concern.
You nod, unable to speak past the lump in your throat. Instead, you press your lips to his in a tender kiss, one that says everything you canât put into words. Charles holds you close, and as you pull back, you see the tears in his eyes, a mirror of your own.
âThank you,â you whisper, and Charles smiles, his thumb brushing away the tear that slips down your cheek.
âNo, thank you,â he says, his voice full of love and admiration. âFor letting me be a part of this, for trusting me with your heart. I promise, Iâll take care of it.â
And as you stand there, wrapped in each otherâs arms, you know that youâve found what James wanted for you all along â someone who will love you just as deeply, just as fiercely, as he did. Someone who will walk with you through the good times and the bad, who will hold your hand and guide you through the darkest days, and who will celebrate the bright ones with joy and laughter.
Youâve found love again, just like James wanted, and it feels like coming home.
***
You park the car under the shade of a sprawling oak tree, the leaves rustling softly in the breeze. The gravel crunches beneath your feet as you step out, Charles following behind, holding Jacques in his arms.
The baby is cooing, tiny hands grabbing at Charlesâ shirt as if itâs the most fascinating thing in the world. You pause for a moment, breathing in the cool air, trying to gather the courage to walk towards the familiar grave that youâve avoided for so long.
Charles adjusts Jacques in his arms, the babyâs chubby legs kicking slightly as he looks around, taking in the new surroundings with wide eyes. You glance at Charles, and he gives you a small, encouraging nod. But this time, thereâs no pressure. Heâs letting you take the lead, letting you go at your own pace.
The last time you were here, you and Charles had just gotten engaged. The memory of Charles standing by Jamesâ grave, asking for his blessing, is still vivid in your mind. And now, two years later, everything has changed. Youâre married to Charles, and you have a beautiful baby boy. But standing here, in front of the man you once loved with all your heart, the weight of everything comes crashing down.
You take a deep breath and start walking towards the grave. The headstone is simple, elegant, just the way James would have wanted it. Fresh flowers have been placed there recently â probably by Jamesâ parents, who visit regularly. A pang of guilt twists in your chest. You should have come sooner.
When you reach the grave, you kneel down, brushing your fingers lightly over the engraved letters of his name. The silence is thick, filled with everything you want to say but canât find the words for. Charles stays a few steps back, giving you space, though you can feel his presence like a warm anchor, grounding you.
âHi, Jamie,â you finally whisper, your voice trembling. âItâs ... itâs been a while, I know. Iâm sorry for not visiting sooner.â
The words catch in your throat, and you have to pause, blinking back tears. You thought you were prepared for this, but being here, with so much time having passed, itâs harder than you imagined.
âI wanted to come sooner, but ... everything just got so overwhelming,â you continue, your voice breaking. âIâve missed you so much. And I know youâre watching over us, but I needed to feel like I could do this ... like I could come back here and tell you everything.â
You glance back at Charles, who is now sitting on the grass with Jacques in his lap. The baby is looking up at the sky, oblivious to the somber mood, a tiny smile playing on his lips. When you turn back to the grave, the tears you've been holding back finally spill over.
âI want you to meet someone,â you say softly. You reach back, signaling Charles to bring Jacques over. Charles carefully lifts Jacques, walking over to you, and gently hands him to you. The baby gurgles, his small hand wrapping around your finger instinctively. You hold Jacques close, your tears falling onto his soft hair.
âThis is Jacques,â you whisper, looking down at your son. âHeâs named after you and Jules. Charles and I wanted to honor you both in some way.â
The name had been something you and Charles had discussed at length. When you found out you were pregnant, there was no hesitation in your minds who you wanted to name your son after. It felt like the right thing to do, like a way to keep a part of James alive in your new life.
âHeâs ... heâs so beautiful, James,â you continue, your voice trembling with emotion. âI wish you were here to see him grow up. To be a part of his life. But I promise, Iâll tell him all about you. About how amazing you were, and how much you loved helping others. Heâll know his name carries a legacy.â
Jacques wiggles in your arms, and you press a soft kiss to his forehead. The tears continue to fall, but now theyâre mixed with a sense of bittersweet acceptance. You look up at the sky, the clouds shifting lazily, and you wonder if James is watching, if heâs smiling down at you.
You glance at Charles, who is watching you with those soft eyes that seem to hold all the love in the world. Heâs been so patient, so understanding, and in this moment, you realize how incredibly lucky you are to have found love again. Itâs not something you ever thought would be possible, but here you are, standing between the past and the future, with a heart big enough to hold them both.
âCharles has been amazing,â you say, your voice barely above a whisper. âYouâd like him, James. Heâs so kind, and he understands ... he understands everything Iâve been through. Heâs been so good to me, and to Jacques. I think youâd be happy to know that we found each other.â
Charles steps closer, wrapping his arms around you from behind, resting his chin on your shoulder. The warmth of his body against yours is comforting, a reminder that youâre not alone in this. Jacques babbles, his tiny fingers reaching up to touch Charlesâ face, and Charles chuckles softly, nuzzling his nose against Jacques' cheek.
You close your eyes, leaning back into Charles, letting yourself feel the full weight of the moment. The grief, the love, the hope â all of it swirling inside you like a storm thatâs finally starting to calm.
âI love you,â you whisper, your voice breaking. âI always will. But Iâve learned that itâs okay to move forward. To let myself be happy again. And I think ... I think youâd want that for me.â
The wind picks up slightly, rustling the leaves in the trees, and for a brief moment, you swear you can feel Jamesâ presence â like a gentle touch on your shoulder, a whisper in your ear, telling you that itâs okay. That heâs at peace, and he wants you to be too.
You turn slightly, pressing a kiss to Charlesâ cheek, then look back at the grave, feeling a sense of closure that you didnât think was possible.
âWeâll be back to visit,â you promise, your voice steadying. âI wonât wait so long next time. And Jacques will grow up knowing who you were, what you meant to us. Heâll know his name is special.â
Charles squeezes your hand, and you nod, letting him know youâre ready to go. You stand, brushing off your pants, and take one last look at Jamesâ grave. The flowers sway gently in the breeze, and you feel a strange sense of peace settle over you. Itâs not goodbye â itâs more of a âsee you later.â
As you walk back to the car, Charles keeps his arm around your waist, holding you close. Jacques is still babbling happily, completely unaware of the emotional weight of the visit. But thatâs okay â heâll understand when heâs older. For now, youâre just grateful to have this moment, to feel like youâre honoring both the past and the future.
When you reach the car, you carefully buckle Jacques into his car seat, making sure heâs secure before you get in. Charles closes the door behind you, and as he starts the engine, you glance back at the grave, giving a small nod as if to say, âThank you.â
As the car pulls away, you lean your head against the window, watching the trees blur past. Charles reaches over, taking your hand in his, and you smile softly, squeezing his hand in return.
Itâs a long drive back home, but you donât mind. You have everything you need right here with you. And as you close your eyes, letting the gentle motion of the car lull you into a peaceful state, you realize that this is what James wanted for you â to find love again, to be happy, to live your life to the fullest.
And you will. For him, for Jacques, for Charles, and for yourself.
#f1 imagine#f1#f1 fic#f1 fanfic#f1 fanfiction#f1 x reader#f1 x you#charles leclerc#cl16#charles leclerc imagine#charles leclerc x reader#charles leclerc x you#charles leclerc fic#charles leclerc fluff#charles leclerc fanfic#charles leclerc blurb#f1 fluff#f1 blurb#f1 one shot#f1 x y/n#f1 drabble#f1 fandom#f1blr#f1 x female reader#charles leclerc x female reader#charles leclerc x y/n#scuderia ferrari#charles leclerc one shot#charles leclerc drabble
2K notes
·
View notes
Text
strip for me.
part four
pairings: hyungline x reader
synopsis: hyung line got you trapped in a situation that you canât get away from.
wc: 8.4k
warnings: heavy smut, minors dni, fivesome, bullying (not promoting violence or bullying), degrading, dirty talks, curses, masturbation, hyung line being mean. this is not proof read.
note: this is not the end for strip for me so calm down. we have more to come. the next part will be heeseungâs solo part. anyway, i know it took time so please enjoy it. reblogs and replies are highly encouraged. this is not proof read so excuse the errors for now. let me know your thoughts by sending me asks. thank you so much.
part one; two; three
slutofpsh 2024 © all rights reserved.
âweâre going to have so much fun...â jake stated meaningfully before winking at you.
your steps halt from approaching the chair they reserved for you. their eyes are fully focused that despite the teacherâs continuous rambling about the project, they donât give her any attention.
âyou can sit here, doll.â and sunghoon drags the chair near him then taps it once before flashing you a soft smile, his fangs showing.
âwhat happened to the uniform i lend you?â he sounds a little upset while looking at your fresh polo. heeseung got you a new one that fits you perfectly.
you blushed, âi p-put it on my locker. i will wash it first then give it back to you. thank you for let me borrow it.â
he smirks, ânah, you can keep it.â
jake and jay stared at him with confusion. they can clearly remember how bad his mood was these past few days, now heâs acting like as if heâs the happiest man that walked on earth. itâs just so odd.
you obliged and sat beside sunghoon while he stare at you, eyes almost forming heart. heeseung scoffs and took off his coat then placed it on your lap since youâre wearing a skirt. a bit too short from his liking, to be specific.
with blushing cheeks, you thanked him silently.
âdid i miss anything?â jake asks, confused.
jay furrowed his brows and stared at his two other friends. heeseung met his eyes and cleared his throat before sitting straight. sunghoon seemed unbothered, eyes still fixed at you with a grin on his handsome face.
âw-why?â you asked him, feeling slightly uneasy because of how heâs not taking his eyes off from you.
ânothing, you look pretty.â he mumbled so naturally before dragging your chair even closer. he did it with so much ease, heâs so strong.
you glanced away, trying hard to ignore his heated gaze. jakeâs watching all of these with his two eyes without blinking. a hint of confusion and a mix of jealousy flickers inside him.
âthe fuck is going on?â he stated with so much sarcasm.
if jay can shut his mouth and ignore it, well definitely not jake. he has a lot of questions inside his mind. why are his friends acting like this? and most of all, why the fuck arenât you like that to him?
âletâs just discuss the project.â heeseung blurted out, blocking any chances to be asked by jake.
he was about to complain more, wanting to dig about this situation deeper, but stopped himself. with clenched jaw, he rests his back on his chair then glanced at your lowered head.
he scoffed, âsweetheart, iâm a little jealous. you need to make it up to me.â he stated that made your cheeks blush, ears turning red.
sunghoon rolls his eyes and impatiently taps the table, âletâs start!â
and with that, heeseung then discusses the possible topics you can research for this project. your mouth slightly gaps at how he was able to keep up with what the teacher was saying when you clearly saw him focusing on you moments ago.
it went on, its just jay who listens and you, slightly. jake and sunghoon didnât even tries to act that they are serious to this project, one plays through his phone, the other had his head slumped over the desk. sunghoonâs hand lays on yours casually, its been like that ever since he lowered his head to sleep.
jake whined when he loses the round and glances at your direction. he smirks and winks at you which made you blush. he giggles and eyes unconsciously landed on sunghoonâs hand.
his smirk faltered and childishly removes it. jay notices and scoffed before writing down on his notes. jake then grabs your hand to intertwin your fingers together, a satisfied smile plastering his handsome face.
heeseung rolls his eyes at it then continued talking about the project that the other two boys obviously doesnât care about.
âweâll be doing our project on our house later.â heeseung said as a last statement to wrap your small meeting.
your head perks and back straightened at what he just said. his eyes caught you right away, attentive of you.
âcan we just d-do it here at school?â you suggested since doing it on their house doesnât sit right for you.
one of his eyebrow arches upwards, âdo you have any problem doing it in mine?â he asks using a serious tone.
your lips slightly trembles and glances at jake on your side when he gradually took your hand on his lips to place a gentle kiss.
âu-uhm, i canât go h-home late. my mom will be so worried.â you tried to reason out.
it was partly true as she was used of you coming home early. heeseungâs house is pretty far from your school and so it will take time to go home. besides, you have no problem asking your mom to pick you up by the school gate, but it will definitely raise curiosity if you suddenly ask her to pick you up at a random house.
his head tilts, âleave that one to me.â he stated and then stood up to leave the circle.
âb-butââ you are held down by jake, yanking your arms to prevent you from standing up and follow heeseung.
jay stood up then taps sunghoon on the shoulder to wake him up.
âno buts, sweetheart.â and jake leans to give you a swift kiss on the cheek then leave as well.
your eyes widen and roamed around to check if somebody saw. theyâre pretty busy discussing about the project, seems like your group was the first one to finish.
a large hand resting at the small of your back is what snaps you back to your senses. he gently caress it up and down then you look over your shoulder to face sunghoon.
his eyes squints a bit, obvious that he just got awoken from a nap. âsomething wrong?â he asks.
you shake your head lightly and he just stares for a while before nodding his head. he stood up and guided you to go back to your chair as well.
the period ended and after the whole class thanked the teacher and bid her good-bye, she walks out of the room. after feeling the need to use the bathroom, you headed out as well.
jakeâs eyes follows you and when youâre out of his sight already, he swat sunghoonâs shoulder.
âthe fuck is your problem?â he hissed at him, his brows drawned closer to each other and he sets his phone down like heâs ready to punch jake right away.
âmy problem? what is your problem?â jake hisses back. âwhy are you suddenly acting like a fucking loser in front of y/n?â
jay smirks and just listens. heeseung watches too, a ghost of a smile playing over his lips.
sunghoonâs forehead slowly loses it crease then he acts innocent before glancing back at his phone. jake almost threw his notebook at him. he canât believe it was that fast to calm him down. by the mere mention of your name.
âwhat do you mean? no iâm not.â
âhere you go, baby. you can sit here, doll.â jake mimics him exaggeratedly. jay laughs at how he mirrored sunghoon while the latter clenches his jaw.
it was his turn to push jakeâs shoulder. âi donât talk that way!â he says, defensive.
âyou actually do, dude.â jay fires back while heeseung just laughs because of it.
âwhatever.â he mumbled, ears turning red.
jake rolls his eyes, âwhat the fuck happened? i thought we will punish her?â and his gaze moves from sunghoon towards heeseung.
heeseung straightens his back and glances away, totally guilty of it. jake just couldnât believe it. these two were the ones so heated up when one of their classmates reported you meeting beomgyu up at the end aisles of the library. they were so hyped up on punishing you and then theyâre acting like this?
âi fucking resisted dicking her down, man!â jake complained.
ânobody told you to do that.â heeseung shrugs his shoulder off that made jake clench his jaw, pissed off.
well, the older one was right. they never agreed on anything but to imply punishment. but that was jakeâs punishment for you. that was his way to let you know that heâs mad and upset. you always knew how much he couldnât get enough of you and how he would bury his dick inside you any chances he gets.
âjakeâs right. i declined her orgasms to make a point.â jay stated, looking a bit upset as well.
the boys glances at him with furrow brows, âyou did what?â jake asks in disbelief.
jay shrugs his shoulder, âyou know how much i love seeing her get off. its always her pleasure over mine. i needed to send her a message.â
heeseung sighs and sunghoon was so ready to hold his collar right there and then.
âdude what the fuck? she mustâve felt so frustrated and bad!â he hissed at his friend.
now, jakeâs pissed off eyes darted back at him. he pushes his friend to sit back properly.
âcalm down lover boy, iâm not yet done with you.â he fired at him.
sunghoon lets out a strained sigh, completely done with jake targeting him nonstop.
âcome on, i lost control too you know? but what am i suppose to do when she said sheâs sorry? of course i couldnât help it.â sunghoon ranted that made the three boys around him furrow their brows.
the frown on jakeâs face deepens as jay and heeseung slightly loses their minds. they contemplates and wonders if they heard that right.
âwhat did you say?â heeseung fires at sunghoon that made him confused. the other two boys kept their mouth shut, jaw clenched.
âshe said sorry.â
they were silenced when sunghoon repeated it for them to hear it clearly. jake was the first one to react as he scoffed and heaved a sigh to calm himself down.
âthatâs it, youâll be the last one to fuck her later.â jake stated, a bit (totally) pissed.
sunghoon thick brows furrowed now, âwhat? thatâs unfair! when did we decided that?â his head cranes to the oldest, trying to gain alliance. after-all, heeseung is in charge of equality and fairness.
but to his surprise, the older one has his brows hardly furrowed as well. his eyes looking serious and are piercing right at him.
âi agree with jake.â jay says casually that made sunghoon complain even more.
âhyung?â sunghoon calls out heeseung because this is the perfect timing to step in and break this shit going on.
âsunghoon will be the last one to touch her then?â
to his dismay, its suddenly apppointed that he will sit back and watch while his three friends devour you. it will be torturous, but its better that than not having you later. he curses and just slumped his head over the table to distract himself with a good nap.
âfucking fuck.â jake curses, still pissed.
jay claps his shoulder, âcalm down. iâm afraid youâll piss your pants sooner or later.â he joked that only made him even more pissed.
he pushes his hands away, âshut up. iâll surely get even later with y/n. she canât do that.â
âhey, donât be too carried away. youâll scare her.â jay warns him before glancing to the older guy, âright, hyung?â
heeseung was silent before he lets out a heavy sigh. âno, i agree with jake.â he shut his eyes and massages his temple a bit.
âwe need to teach her a lesson. she canât have her favorite or it will ruin us all.â
on the other hand, youâre inside the girlâs bathroom and washing your hands when (name) walks in together with her minions. sheâs one of the popular girls in your class. very pretty and rich.
her mean eyes darted right at you. it screams danger so you glanced away from her and just focuses on your hand.
she walks closer and stopped beside you.
âwho can expect that the quiet girl in class can be such a cunt?â her words made your brows furrow.
âexcuse me?â youâre taken aback with how aggressive she is. it was so unexpected. she never approaches or talk to you then suddenly sheâs going in this hard?
the response obviously made her even more mad. she raised her eyebrows and crossed her arms. one glance to her minions and they went on both of your sides, cornering you. theyâre giggling like hyenas.
âooh, look at you acting all brave just because you think those boys are interested in you?â the bitterness lingers over your tone.
your brows narrowed in confusion as to what sheâs talking about. you wondered more, then realization finally hits you like a big truck. boys... heeseung and his friends?
you glanced at her, âi donât know what you m-mean.â
oh no. you stuttered. and that only mean one thing. that youâre lying and you know you are. because you out of all people, knows what she means.
you thought youâre being slick on hiding whatâs going on between you and those boys, but definitely youâre wrong. you couldnât help, but to blame it on them as theyâre the ones being so bold about it. also because theyâre really the one should be blame for it.
she lets out a loud sarcastic laugh, her eyes oozing with anger. she pushes your shoulder off. âoh fuck you! iâm not dumb!â
you shut your eyes and was about to walk away when her minions hold you down.
âlet me go!â you tried squirming, freeing yourself which you failed miserably.
one of them curses at you and even elbowed your side. you grunted and folds because of the pain. (name) then walks closer and yanked your arm so you can face her.
âbitch! whore!â and she started to be physical, slapping you left and right.
âp-please, stop...â you begged which they ignored completely. she just continued hurting you and her friends hold you to prevent any resistance.
âyou think they really like you? think again bitch!â she pulls your hair hardly making you face upwards. when your tear stained eyes met her arrogant ones, she smirks.
âfor them youâre just a toy they will play with until theyâre sick and tired of you.â and after that one last sentence she pushed you hard to the floor.
her friends laughed so hard while you have yourself slumped across the cold concrete. tears streaming down your face.
âletâs go girls. letâs leave that slut alone.â
you cried, feeling your face hurting and some other places in your body. but thatâs not what causing your tears to flow nonstop. its what (name) said that had a big blow on you.
what she says was partly right. you have no idea what those boys want from you and base on how they treats you is similar to what she implied. a toy. thatâs all you are for them. and that hurts you so much.
ây/n...â you snapped back to reality when you heard a faint call on your name.
âh-huh?â when you lift your head, youâre met with jayâs furrowed brows. his eyes scanning yours with gentle look on it.
heeseung stands a few feet away with jake. your hand sways that caught your attention, even before you can glance at the side, sunghoonâs face came into your view.
his brows folded in a worried way, âare you all right, doll?â and you can feel him squeeze your hand slightly.
ây-yes.â
he pursed his lips and scanned his eyes over your pretty face. his other free hand have your things. jake shows a displeased expression then walked towards your direction.
âgive her some space. youâre crowding her.â he says, interrupting and even pushed sunghoon away from you.
hoonâs hand detached from holding yours that pissed him off a little. his eyes shooting glares at jake when he grab your wrist and started guiding you towards the car that just parked beside heeseung.
heeseung opened the door to the passenger seat when youâre near enough. he tilt his head asking you to enter his car. you glanced at his serious eyes, hands fidgets.
âmy m-mom... she still doesnât knowââ
âdonât worry too much about it, angel. i already talked to her.â he stated in a lazy tone.
your mouth slightly gaps, doesnât really want to believe him right away. you knew your mom. sheâs a little bit strict when it comes to you hanging out a bit too late of your curfew at home.
âr-really?â
heeseung stares at your eyes before letting out a sigh. he fished his phone out from his pocket then dialled someone. he tapped the speaker on and eventually you heard the sound of somebody answering the phone.
âheeseung-ah?â
your eyes widen at the familiar voice errupting from the other line. heeseung handed you the phone so you can talk to her.
âm-mom..â
ây/n? darling, heeseung called me and told me that youâll be staying late in their house for a group project?â she continuously said. you can tell base of the tone of her voice that sheâs thrilled about you having friends.
ây-yes.â
âwell, heâs such a nice boy. very polite as well and such a sweetheart for calling me himself to inform me about this project.â she blabbers nonstop. your cheeks blushed while feeling a bit embarrassed about it.
jake rolls his eyes as he throw his things inside his own car parked near heeseungâs. jay went to his and rest on it while waiting patiently. sunghoon hangs both of the straps of your bag on his shoulder before he gets on his big bike, holding his helmet on his free hand.
âu-uh, yes. heâs the president of the student council.â you answered while eyeing heeseung whose leaning on his car, near you. his hand rests at the open door for you.
âthatâs great! he also told me that heâll take you home later after it so i donât have to worry.â she added.
eventually, she bids goodbye and so you did. your stares stayed at his phone before you handed it back to heeseung. he tilts his head again, asking you to enter his vehicle. without having any choice, you obliged.
you realized that no matter how hard you try to escape, thereâs no getting away from them. they have control on everything and thatâs what scares you the most. how smoothly they do these things and manipulate you on doing whatever that they all want. just like what (name) said. youâre like their toy.
âseatbelt, angel.â heeseung snaps you out of your own thoughts.
you nodded and grabbed over the safety strap on your side. your eyes caught sunghoon getting on his big motorbike and attractively putting his helment on for safety. you blushed unconsciously seeing your bag hangs on his broad shoulders and placed in front of him.
it looked totally out of place on how his all black motorbike and dark blue uniform mixed with your light colored school bag. it looked so feminine that you can already tell it doesnât belong to the fine man.
his head cranes over to your side and even if heeseungâs car is heavily tinted and if sunghoonâs wearing a helmet, it seems like heâs looking directly to your eyes.
he started the engine of his bike and then a loud roaring sound errupts from it. he then bolted out from the parking lot of the school. both you and heeseung follows his bike driving away.
âsuch a show off.â he utters under his breath and then moves after jake drove his car out the parking.
the drive was as expected, slightly long. heeseung is quiet, only the faint song playing from the radio is what plays on the background. it was a little awkward, if youâll be honest.
âare you cold?â you jolt a little when heeseung suddenly ask that question. he glanced at you briefly and you answered with a low ânoâ. he nods and then continued driving.
eventually, the vehicle slows down as it reaches near this huge elegant gate. your mouth gaps in amusement, eyes catching his friendâs vehicle entering as well. sunghoonâs big bike storms inside and even throw a middle finger at jakeâs car.
âstay for a bit, angel. iâll open yourââ your heads whips over to the side when heeseungâs car bursts open.
jake leans downward to meet your eyes, hands rests in front, offering to help you.
âletâs go, sweetheart.â he smiles. you didnât really have much of a choice as he reaches for your hand and guided you outside the car.
heeseung went out too and you saw jay getting off his vehicle as well. a small smirk playing over his sexy lips.
âwhatâs happening to the three of you, really?â he scoffs and rolls his eyes.
you glanced at the three as well, a confused look plastered all over your face. you did notice how theyâre being weird from the parking lot incident.
âits because of jake. heâs so childish.â sunghoon commented right after walking near your place.
jake frowns, âno, iâm not!â he hardly objects.
heeseung rolls his eyes, âstop sulking, jake sim.â he then started walking towards the grand entrance of the big mansion right in front of you.
because of their small arguments, you failed to even notice it. now that you had the chance to admire it, you can tell that it reaks off money. some side comments and other complaints can be heard from jake but your focus was at the big house.
soon, a hand placed gently on the lower of your back.
âletâs go inside, baby.â jay says lowly and started to guide you towards the house.
you gulped, but followed him. its not like you have other options. besides youâre here to do the project... right?
when you made it inside, there are a lot of helpers assisting and attending to heeseung.
âwelcome back, sir jay.â one greets when she noticed the guy beside you. looks like heâs often here that the maids are familiar of him.
oh, silly you. they all grew up together. it just made sense that theyâre often at each otherâs house.
âthis is miss y/n.â he introduces you that caught you off-guard. she shifted her eyes to you and smiled warmly before offering a bow.
you panicked then bows back. âh-hi!â
âare you sir jayâs girlfriend?â she curiously asked right after.
âu-uhhââ
âwhat are you two doing? letâs go to my room.â heeseung interrupts with a stern voice.
jay smiles at the maid before guiding you towards the second floor. you just gave a small smile to the lady and just let yourself go to wherever jay asks you to.
heeseung and jay then started talking about a left work on the student councilâs office. it was none of your concern so you try to busy yourself with the things you can see around the house. the interior of the whole place was just amazing. you can tell they spent a lot for their home.
you stopped walking once jay and heeseung did and you saw a door in front of heeseung. he glanced at you before opening it.
your steps halted when youâre about to go inside. something inside you just grow worried. you have no idea why, but your heart kept on beating so fast.
they noticed your sudden hesitation so both of them glanced over their shoulders, looking at you.
âwhatâs wrong?â jay asks while heeseung remains silent.
you gulped and took a short glance around heeseungâs spacious room. ân-nothing.â
you took a long breath, âc-canât we just do it at your living room?â you pull up a smile in order to not raise any suspicion. the last thing you want is for them to think that youâre taking this in a wrong way.
âwhatâs wrong with doing it inside my room?â heeseung asks nonchalantly.
you took a step back, âu-uhm,ââ you gasps when your back suddenly collided with a broad chest.
âgoing somewhere, doll?â sunghoon stares down at you while he stood gloriously behind you.
jake scoffs and then wrapped his arms around your shoulder, pulling up a mischievous grin.
âletâs go inside, okay? weâre going to have so much fun!â he cheers with a big smile, but you can feel your stomach churns and heart beating so fast.
sunghoon steps forward pushing you inside the room. heeseung sat down his gaming chair and rotates it so heâs facing his king sized bed. jay took off his coat and hangs it neatly by the sofa. jakeâs smirking while watching you closely.
you feel timid being around and watched by them, so you looked everywhere except their eyes. the silence stretched for a couple of minutes before heeseung breaks it.
âstrip, angel.â he starts then rests his back completely at the chair.
your feet glued at the floor and breathing got rigif while facing your back at them. their heated gaze pierced and almost burned a hole behind your head. you can feel it.
âstrip for us.â he says in a very demanding tone.
slowly, you faced them with a slight fear flickering through your eyes.
âh-huh? but weâre suppose to d-do our projectââ
âoh fuck that project, sweetheart! weâre going to do you instead.â jake interrupts smirking after licking his plump lips once. his eyes stares at you like a hungry predator.
âcalm down, jake. youâre going to scare her.â jay says, mischief lazing through his voice while smirking sexily beside sunghoon.
theyâre both sat at the sofa. the man beside him has his polo unbuttoned all the way, leaning forward as his elbow rests over his knees and eyes burning at you. heâs quiet and red lips hardly pursed. his dark, thick eyebrows narrowed together.
you remained standing awkwardly at the middle of heeseungâs bedroom, the door a few feet away from you. it slid inside your mind. to try and run away from them. but its impossible. with their built, they can easily catch you and who knows what that can do to you? they never go easy whenever theyâre pissed off.
besides, sunghoonâs sat on the path towards it. he can easily grab and stop you from escaping. thatâs totally crossed out of your plans.
you heaved a sigh, âg-guys,â
âdid we ask you to talk?â heeseung.
instantly, your lips are pursed hardly. despite him showing a little soft side of him from a while ago, youâre still terrified whenever heâs very serious.
âweâre waiting, baby.â jay caught your attention.
you stared at them for a while and realized that you have nowhere to go. they got you cornered and stripped off of choices. once again, youâre helpless around these four men.
you balled your fists and jakeâs eyes dropped from your pretty face to your hands. theyâre trembling and heâs certain its a mixture of fear and worry. his grin grew wider. his nerves are shaking in excitement. he couldnât wait to have you, to devour you, to ruin you.
âgo on, y/n.â heeseung, again with his stern voice.
your eyes darted at sunghoon whose still quiet. his eyes then soften and he sighs, fists relaxing.
âstrip for us, doll. its okay, we wonât hurt you.â he says in a calm voice. its still a surprise how heâs acting right now. heâs not the impatient and rough sunghoon. it slightly made you feel at ease.
when your hand slowly raised to untangle your necktie, you heard jake hissed and glared at sunghoon.
âremember what we talked about, hoon!â he said that got you confused.
sunghoon rolls his eyes, âyeah, whatever. iâm just trying to make her feel relax. youâre putting too much pressure on her.â
jake clicked his tongue and glanced back at you. his eyes looked more aggressive, screams more danger.
âwhy, sweetheart? are we scaring you?â he stepped closer, making you hold your breath.
âam i scaring you?â he repeats his words, his face are inches away from yours that you can feel his hot breath fanning your skin.
âjake,â heeseung calls him.
he ignored him and kept his stares right at your pretty face. despite the lack of answer, the tears on your eyes were enough to tell him that you are indeed scared. it didnât make him feel pitiful, instead it drives him more crazy.
âstrip for me or iâll rip them off from you myself.â he groans.
you gulped and started to fasten your pace. now unbuttoning your poloâ the one heeseung got you.
sunghoon clenched his jaw hardly, fighting so hard to interrupt. his friends talked to him about being the last to touch you tonight as a punishment for him. its actually a shit decision they came up with just because they think heâs starting to be your favorite.
that thought was the only thing that made him agree. he couldnât help but to feel excited thinking about it.
he stood up that made jay and heeseung glance at his direction.
âdonât get in the way.â jay reminded him.
he threw him a short glance as he fished something from his pocket.
âiâm not going to.â he pulls out a cigarette and a lighter. âiâm going to smoke.â he added then glance at heeseung.
âyou wonât mind right?â
heeseung stares for a while before tearing his gaze off of sunghoon. he took that as a yes then lits his cigarette.
âtake off everything.â jake commands when you finished getting rid of your polo and school skirt.
âb-butââ
âstrip.â he shortly said.
you stared at his eyes and slowly obliged. you donât even know why you kept complaining when youâll just end up doing it too.
the moment you finished taking everything off, completely naked in front of them, you feel shy. so shy that you try covering whatever your arms can. the four men stares silently, their eyes grew darker. looked more hungrier.
âlay on the bed for me, sweetheart.â jake mumbles, this time a lot more softer. âi want to eat you.â he added while taking off his necktie.
before jake continues discarding his clothes off, he snakes his hand on your nape to pull you closer to him. he placed a wet, but gentle kiss on your lips then stares right at your eyes.
âyouâre so pretty. do you know that?â he says under his breath that made your heart race. he seems pissed, and honestly his attitude today are off for you. heâs very playful in nature, but the way heâs so aggressive is not like him. you know somethingâs up with jake sim.
âlet me fucking eat you.â he added and then continued what he stopped doing to give you a kiss.
your eyes moved towards heeseung and he just gave you a nod. with slow steps you walked towards the bed and sat on the edge.
jake gently pushed your body so you can lay on it then he opened your thighs for him, giving a full display of your slightly wet core. he growls lightly, salivating by the view.
âdamn, this pussy.â he mumbles before giving it a long lick making you purse your lips together.
jake almost went crazy having a taste of your cunt. he always loved it. if he can, he will eat you all day. so he didnât waste a time to dive in and lap your cunt like a hungry animal. you whimper and legs slowly closing out of pleasure from the way heâs eating you.
a hand then reaches over your knee to open them back. when you open your eyes, you saw jay. heâs already standing at the edge of the bed, beside jake. his white t-shirt is off already and heâs left with just his boxers.
âkeep them wide open, baby.â he orders while his other hand palms his cock inside his shorts.
you canât even say a word or resist as your mind gets all fuzzy because of how good jake is making you feel. jake giggles through your cunt making you shut your eyes, brows arching closer to each other.
your face contorts out of pleasure.
jakeâs hand rests at your thighs and massages it gently. you can feel a hand carding your hair, brushing it off your pretty face.
your eyes pry open when jake pulls away.
âsorry, angel. weâll move you a bit so you can suck jay.â heeseung caught your attention. heâs already near the bed too.
when your eyes look at jay, heâs already taking off his boxers as they slightly drag you towards the corner of the bed. jay dives his head and kissed you on your lips while fondling on your exposed tits.
âuhm,â you moaned. he gave it a few more suck then tugs it lightly using his teeth as he pulls away, making you yelp.
âsuck my dick, baby. letâs get you busy.â jay mumbles and places his shaft near your face.
jake then continues eating you, making you squirm again. he pushes your thighs wider, doesnât giving you any chance to close it. he wants to take his time, eating and enjoying how you whimper in pleasure. the way you look pained, but he knew pretty well that heâs making you feel so good.
âhowâs the view from there, hoon?â jay shouted, taunting his friend.
your eyes shifted at the sofa while jay enters your mouth. sunghoonâs dark eyes are darted at you while he sexily huffs on his cigarette. its taking everything of him not to get in between. he couldnât help but feel so aroused by the sight of his own friends using you.
he remained silent and just watch from afar. jay scoffs then narrows his brows when his cock reaches the inside of your mouth. it feels so warm and soft, something that drives him crazy.
âfuck.â he curses and started to thrust on his own liking.
while jake laps your pussy and jay fucks your mouth, heeseung takes off all his clothes. he position himself on your other side then grabs your hand.
âyou arenât forgetting about me now, are you angel?â his taunting voice rings over your head and you mumbled something, causing vibration straight to jayâs throbbing cock.
âoh just like that, baby.â he groans and continues pistoning his hips towards you.
heeseung gave a few strokes to his dick before leaning to give you a kiss on the lips as well. it lasted for a few more seconds until he pulls away so you can give him a hand job.
âoh, yeah. just like that.â heeseung mumbles as he watch you all occupied with them.
he cannot help but to feel very excited at the view. how your eyes are tear stained yet still do as they say. its giving a satisfaction he couldnât get from anything. he was certain youâre the only one who can give it to him, to them.
jake chuckes and giggles mischievously while tongue buried deep inside your wet hole. his chin wet with your juices and his saliva. it was heaven for him to see you squirm uncontrollably because of pleasure.
âu-ugh!â your mouth hugs jayâs big dick tighter that made him groan in pleasure, your hand too tightens around heeseungâs. it indicates that you are nearing your first release and they all couldnât wait.
âare you near, baby?â jay asks, whimpering from his own pleasure.
you nodded continuously, slightly losing your mind at the climax youâve been anticipating.
âiâm near too, baby. letâs cum together.â jay groans and grind even harder, chasing you.
âgive it to me, sweetheart.â jake fucks into your cunt using his two fingers, tongue attached on your hole, waiting for that sweet juice heâs been dying for.
heeseung brushes your hairs off from your face, making sure to fist them so it wonât cover your pretty features. he loves staring and watching you whimper in pleasure. beads of sweat forms on your forehead and his eyes travels down your tits boucing slightly due to jake finger fucking you.
he leans and puts your nipple inside his mouth, sucking and twirling his hot tongue on the tip, making you feel dizzy.
ânghhh,â your thighs shakes and tries to move away from jakeâs lips but he held you firm, making sure you have nowhere to go. sucking and taking all of your juices.
the sensation making your eyes rolls at the back of your head. jay, too reached his climax and shoot at the depth of your hot mouth, cursing and growling.
âsuch a good girl.â he says and leans to give you a kiss on your cheeks. âpretty baby.â he added and placed another kiss.
once done harvesting your cum, jake stood up and licks his lips with a grin on his face.
âget on fours. iâll fuck you doggystyle.â he says and grabs your hand to help you get up from laying down. he knew youâre still in trance from the recent release.
heeseung gently press your palm to catch your attention. he arched his brows while glancing softly at your direction. jay brushes your hair away and wiped off the sweat.
âyou good, angel? still with us?â heeseung asks and help you position yourself.
you nod your head once, head still fuzzy. heeseung chuckles, finding you adorable and kisses your shoulder once.
âyouâre so hot, sweetheart.â jake and smacks your butt cheeks. you yelp slightly at the impact. it stings a bit but it oddly feels so good.
jake groans and cupped both your butt and leans in to kiss it, biting it.
âcalm down, dude.â jay chuckles and swat his arms which he answered with a giggle.
your ears are still ringing from all of that when a hand started to gather your hair. it was sunghoon and heâs looking at you with slight worry in his eyes.
âiâll just tie your hair, doll.â you nodded and he did his best to put away those lose hairstrands out of your face.
you smiled at him softly and mumbled âthank youâ, which you doubt he heard. he sighs and leans in to kiss you once on your lips before walking back near jay.
âperfect. suck my dick this time, okay?â heeseung says and positions himself in front of you.
a small nod is what you gave him and he smirks, pinching your cheeks because he find you cute this way. all submissive and sweaty.
âready? iâm going in.â jake says from behind and heeseung just nods his head.
you moaned the moment you felt jake pushing his dick inside of you, stretching you in the process. his thick veiny cock slowly disappears. just half of it and heâs already going crazy. he missed this feeling. he missed feeling you around him, suffocating and taking all of his length.
âfuck, youâre so tight.â he groans and couldnât wait anymore as he did a hard thrust, reaching it deep.
your eyes widen at the sudden visitor making your mouth gap as well. heeseung took this chance to enter your mouth and he let out muffled curses because of how hot your lips feels around him. his brows narrowed closer to each other.
âshit.â he curses and take his time rutting his dick over your mouth. he was fighting back not to go too hard as he wants to go slow.
on the other hand, jakeâs the opposite. heâs going fast and deep making you see stars. you tried hard to keep on all fours, but you can feel your knees losing its strength, along with your arms.
as jake started to take it faster, making sure heâs hitting every delicious places inside you, heeseung decided to catch pace with him. the room was filled with your moans and the erotic slapping sounds of your bodies colliding each other.
âiâm f-fucking close...â jake hissed and laid his tongue out sexily. heeseung smirks and gets more aggressive on using your mouth to chase his own orgasm.
âme too.â heeseung.
you moaned and tightens your cunt and lips when you felt your own climax approaching. jakeâs breath became more heavy at the pleasure your hole is making him feel.
âfuck you feel so good like this, sweetheart.â he groans and slaps your butt then leans down to kiss your back, making sure to suck on the skin to leave a mark. his mark.
âso good for me.â he says, almost out of breath. âso damn good for all of us.â
and a few more deep thrust, jake released his hot cum inside you. heeseung throws his head back, cumming inside your mouth. the three of you are catching your breaths while he both tries to catch your highs. heeseung strokes your cheeks gently.
your knees gaves in and body collided to heeseungâs soft white sheets. jay steps in and made sure youâre all right.
âtired, angel?â heeseung whispered, smiling while looking at your shut eyes and breathing heavily.
jake pulls out, some of his cum dripping out from your hole. he kneels down to see it more clearly and groans at the sight of it. he licks two of his fingers and slides it in your hole, shoving his cum back. it made you jolt and moan, feeling too much.
he chuckles, âyou did good for me, sweets.â his eyes a lot more softer than before. he seems to calm down now.
âweâre not done yet.â heeseung mumbles that you responded with a light groan.
he ignored it and laid back at the edge of his bed, feet touching the floor.
âride me, angel.â he held your arm to guide you over his lap. you needed some help and the other boys were quick to assist you.
âtoo t-tired..â you manage to say. heeseung placed a chaste kiss at your cheeks.
âits okay, iâll do the work.â he assures you.
jake smirks meeting eyes with heeseung. he taps jayâs shoulder and tilted his chin towards the two of you.
âletâs do it, jay.â jake says excitedly. âfuck her other hole.â and he trudges towards heeseungâs side drawer.
sunghoon stood up with furrowed brows.
âwhat the fuck do you mean? we never tried it before.â he steps in. âare you sure she can handle that today?â
jake rolls his eyes and glanced at his friend for a while. he taps his chest and raised the bottle of lube. âyes. iâm sure our girl can handle it.â
âright, sweets?â he asks you.
you are not at the proper state of mind to respond or comprehend what theyâre talking about. your mind is too clouded with pleasure and the overstimulation is taking away your capability to understanding anything.
âangel?â heeseung gently calls you.
âhmm?â you hummed.
he chuckles, âjay and i are going to fuck you at the same time. is that okay?â
jokes on them because you canât even process anything. a nod is all you gave them. sunghoon gulped, a bit nervous but he canât deny that heâs also looking forward to it. heâs so sure youâll look so alluring having both your holes filled.
âsee? sheâs our big girl.â jake smirks and squats down to prep your hole. they donât really need a lot of the lube as youâre so wet from what jake just did moments ago and because youâre too aroused.
âdamn, so tight.â he mumbles after sliding his index finger inside as a test.
jay gulped, totally salivating. he pushes his friend away and positions himself.
âjust make sure to take it slow, man.â sunghoon reminded him, now starting to discard his clothes one by one.
âw-what...â youâre slowly going back to your senses, but it was too late.
heeseung slides his cock inside your pussy as jay puts the tip in front of your butt hole. your eyes slightly grow big and worry flashes your pretty face.
âh-huh?â youâre about to look back when jake cups your face. he smiles sweetly and kisses your lips.
âdonât be scared, sweets. weâll make sure you will feel good, okay?â his gaze too soft and hypnotizing.
its not that you donât want it. for the past months that youâve been under these boys, theyâve already corrupted you. behind those innocent looking eyes you flashes them is the dark desire of having them all to yourself.
sunghoon soon came into your view, âitâll be all right, doll.â he smiles and held your hand.
âhere i come, baby.â jayâs low voice ringed from behind you and as he says, he pushes forward.
âugh,â you groaned, hurting from the fresh stretch.
heeseung starts to slowly fuck from below you, just to ease some of the pain youâre going through.
âi-it hurts...â your eyes starts tearing up.
sunghoon glared at jake. âdid you even put enough lube?â he hissed at his friend.
jake caress your cheeks, âi did! its suppose to hurt, sweets. just like the first time when sunghoon took you.â he reminded with a slight bitterness on his tone.
sunghoon ignored his friend comments and focused on comforting you. he leans in and attached his lips on yours, tongue messily dancing with each other.
âfuck, so tight...â jay groaned, eyes shut from the pleasure of being squeezed inside you.
âher cunt is getting more tighter too, jay. keep going.â heeseungâs brows are narrowed from pleasure.
the sting is still there, but it became more tolerable as heeseung dicks you from below and sunghoon making out with you. eventually, theyâre sliding in and out smoothly.
âoh m-my gosh..â your eyes rolled at the back of your head from the intense pleasure you are having.
you cannot describe it. the way their big dicks are drilling you are making you crazy, feels like heaven.
âfuck.â jay and heeseung cursed hardly as they fuck you in sync.
jake salivates just by watching you getting used by them. you look beautiful. you look so hot. and you are his. you belong to them.
âiâm getting close, hyung.â jay growls and kept on rutting his cock inside you.
âme too.â heeseung leans and capture your breast to suck it.
âso good for us. such a good girl.â jay mumbles.
sunghoon pulls away to watch. âfuck.â
âyouâre so good, sweetheart.â jake whispers beside your face. you smiles and moans, trying to keep your eyes open to look at him.
your free hand reaches over his handsome face and cares it, âk-kiss me, jake.â his eyes darken and without hesitation he gaves in to your request.
a few moments, jay and heeseung came inside your holes together with you. both of your legs shakes and body collapsing on top of heeseung, panting so hard.
heeseung breaths in, taking your sweet scent. he pulls your face closer to make out as he kept sliding his dick inside, fucking his cum back.
your eyes already closed and almost passing out. he kisses your cheeks and smiles.
âjust one more, angel. can you do it for us?â he asks gently.
you nodded your head and he smiles, âgood girl.â
sunghoon helps you to get off from heeseung so he can replace him. jake made sure youâre stable enough as you straddle his lap. jay squats to clean you as his, heeseungâs and jakeâs cum drips all over the place.
âhey,â sunghoon calls softly and cups both of your cheeks. he tries to search for your eyes.
âjust one more, doll.â
you nodded your head, âp-please.â
âplease what, pretty?â
âplease make me feel g-good.â you look drunk on lust because youâre starting to sound demanding.
the boys chuckles, finding you adorable this way. sunghoon smiles, relieved that you seem to be fine. just exhausted.
âdefinitely, love.â he whispers. âthatâs what weâre all here for, doll. to make you feel good.â and he kissed your cheeks.
jake leans in and kisses your shoulderblades. âiâll fuck you too, sweets. okay?â
you nodded your head and props your head asking for a kiss. he chuckles and gave in, dropping a quick peck on your swollen lips.
âhold on tight on sunghoon, hmm?â heeseungâs back beside you.
you nodded and placed both of your hands on sunghoonâs broad shoulders. jay went inside the bathroom to start running a warm bath for you.
âiâll enter now.â sunghoon says and slides inside your pussy.
both of you moaned. jakeâs eyes darken as he position himself behind you, his aching tip dying to enter your other hole.
âhere i come, sweets.â and smoothly slides in as well. the three of you are a moaning mess.
your mind all blank and youâre starting to see stars already. the two of them fucked you rough and fast, not giving any mercy. the way they rutt their dicks are different from how they console you moments ago. they went fast, like theyâre chasing something.
âfuck, pussy so good.â sunghoon moans and kisses your shoulders, he opens his mouth then buries his fangs on your skin. oddly, it added to the pleasure.
âoh shit... so good sweetheart.â jakeâs brows draws closer to each other as he focuses on the view of his cock sliding inside your butt hole. it was so hot. the hottest thing heâs ever seen.
it went for a few more minutes. your moans and the skin slapping each other echoes through the whole room. it was so good. so damn good that you almost pass out due to too much pleasure and tiredness.
âiâm cumming.â sunghoon was the first one to announce.
âme too, dude!â jake and he reaches over your clit to rub it.
ânnghh,â you moaned, unable to even utter a single word anymore.
âsheâs choking me inside. sheâs close, jake. fuck faster.â sunghoon hissed and the two of them did it.
a few more seconds and they shoot their hot cums inside. jakeâs panting so hard, so is sunghoon. you completely fall over sunghoonâs body, eyes close shut.
âdoll?â sunghoon calls out between his heavy breaths.
you didnât respond so he slightly pulls away to check on you. he saw youâre already pass out so he smiled and kisses your cheeks gently.
âyou did good, doll.â he whispers.
jake pulls out and before cleaning himself, he grabbed the towel from jay and cleaned you. he leans over your face to kiss you softly with a warm smile on his face. âyou did so well, sweets.â
jay brushes away some hairs that sticked onto your pretty face, âthank you, baby. you did so well.â he whispers.
sunghoon helped putting you over heeseungâs arms and he walks inside the bathroom where the warm bath is waiting for you.
you groaned, âweâll just clean you before you rest, angel.â he assured and gently placed you at the bathtub.
you can feel your whole body aching, mind still fuzzy after all you did. despite everything, one question plays inside your mind.
âwhat are you for them?â
tricky one too. youâre dying to know, but at the same time youâre scared to find out. most of the times they are mean to you, makes you feel like their toy. but after how they acted moments ago, it raised confusion. a slight hope that they indeed care for you as much as you care for them ignites inside you.
you tried shoving that thought off. youâre too tired. maybe youâll ask them later. for now, youâre going to rest because they surely pushed you to your limit.
heeseung stares at your pretty face then smiles and caress your cheeks, âyou did so well for us, angel.â and kisses you once on your lips.
tag-list:
@shawnyle @baekxo07 @parksunghoonsgf @skzenhalove @shanb1n @kaykay11sworld @starfallia @blank-velvet @nctislifue @avaleyshin @kpopslays @jooniesbears-blog
#enhypen#enhypen smut#enhypen hard hours#enhypen hard thoughts#enhypen hyung line#enhypen imagines#enhypen lee heeseung#enhypen heeseung smut#enhypen park jongseong#enhypen jay smut#enhypen jake sim#enhypen jake smut#enhypen park sunghoon#enhypen sunghoon smut#enhypen x reader#slutofpsh
3K notes
·
View notes
Text
ex-conomics | csc
you supported seungcheol through years of being an aspiring athlete, and all you got to show for it was your undergraduate degree and an awkward, stuttered apology when he dumped you to go semi-pro. now heâs back after an injury derailed his career, and thereâs only one problem: youâre the only one available to tutor him. you - 0; the universe - 1. talk about no return on investment.
✠pairing: choi seungcheol x f. reader ✠genre: exes to (lite) enemies to lovers; university au; angst, fluff ✠rating: while there is nothing explicit in this fic, there are two brief references to smut. while i can't stop anyone from reading this, i would prefer minors do not interact with this or any of my work. ✠warnings: cheol is some degree of famous, reader is a grad student/TA, mentions of an injury and coping with the aftermath of it, lots of economics talk that even i do not understand, swearing, one mention of alcohol, some misplaced jealousy, rom-com tropes, dino is kind of a loser but we love him anyway. probably a lot of other things i missed, but this is actually pretty tame for a fic of this length. ✠word count: 13.4k ✠thank you: a lot of people looked this over for me in the process and i'm sure i will forget some of them so if i do i'm sorry: @the-boy-meets-evil, @hot-soop, @highvern, and @haologram, who also gave me some wonderful ideas for the vlogs. thank you to MIT for opencourseware existing. i took microeconomics and dropped it, so i couldn't have done this without you. everyone in the discord server for helping me along the way and keeping me motivated. ✠author's note: i haven't posted a fic in nearly seven months, so i think it goes without saying that there are parts of this i like and a lot more i'm not 100% happy with. i'd love if this was more fleshed out and 10k longer, but i was able to write anything at all so it's good enough. this was written for the back to school with seventeen collab, hosted by @camandemstudios. thank you both for letting me participate! please make sure to check out the rest of the stories! everyone worked so hard and this collab was a ton of fun to participate in. <3
You look down at the paper. Back up at who handed it to you. Down at the paper again.
âYouâve got to be joking.â
The poor freshman kid laughs, all nerves, and even though the sound is grating, you remember what itâs like to be forced into work study. How far away graduate school seemed; how large your professors loomed over you with all their power and knowledge and credentials; how you constantly felt like the dumbest person in nearly every room you walked into for four straight years.
âUmââ
You sigh, just barely resisting the urge to slam your head onto your desk. âIâitâs fine, donât worry about it.â Your words do little to ease Freshmanâs nerves. Heâs still hunched over in the doorway of your office, wringing his hands as he shifts his weight back and forth, in for a lifetime of body pain with the way heâs squaring his shoulders. âYouâre sure about this, though? Like, Iâm really not being set up?â
âI donât think so?â he offers, slowly starting to turn green right before your eyes. âDr. Lee ga-gave me the paperwork himself, I donât think he wouldâve messed it up? Oh no, did I mess it up? Should I go back to Student Services and confââ
Good god, this kidâs anxiety is gonna stink up your office for weeks. âNo need!â you interject. âIâll justâŠâ Sign it, you want to say, but the longer you stare at the sheet of paper the quicker youâre losing your resolve.
TUTORING REQUEST FORM Student Name: Choi Seungcheol Degree: Undergraduate Major: Business Course: ECON04101 Introduction to Microeconomics Instructor: Lee Yeonseok, PhD. Recommended Tutoring: High (3-4 hours per week)
You curse under your breath. Of the two names on the paper, Dr. Leeâs does not come as a surprise. Heâs a notorious hard-ass with an infamous attrition rateâmost students donât last more than a week in any of his classesâbut heâs also the sole reason you were able to pay for someof your grad school tuition out of pocket with all the tutoring money you made.
That, however, was two years ago.
âDoes he know I donât tutor anymore?â Stupid question. The kid stares blankly back at you, as if to say I donât know any more than the people in Student Services, let alone Dr. Lee. It is literally my first year here. âIâm Dr. Ahnâs TA this year. Iâve got my hands full with her bullsh⊠stuffââ
Immediately, you know youâve said something wrong, because the kidâs eyes light up, all that previous anxiety disappearing like smoke. âWait, the same Dr. Ahn that teaches the crypto course?â
âNo, that one died,â you say quickly. Kid deflates. âAnyway, I donât really tutor anymore, especially for econ. As you can seeââyou gesture vaguely around the cramped four walls of your officeââtheyâve upgraded me. They even put my name on a little placard by the door! Go look! They spelled it wrong! If that doesnât sum up this university I donât know what does.â
You heave another sigh. Try to school your face and tone into something that exudes professionalism and finality. âLook, Iâm sorry I canât help you. I tutored Dr. Leeâs students for, like, three years in undergrad so Iâm sure they just⊠forgot that wasnât my actual job here. Whoâs in charge of tutoring these days? Iâll shoot them an email and explain all this.â
Freshman gives you a name, and it takes less than a second to find them in the employee directory. You expect that to be the end of it, but heâs still taking up space in your doorway. You quirk an eyebrow. âYes?â
The hand-wringing returns, along with an embarrassed flush that disappears beneath the neckline of his school-branded sweatshirt. âI justâum. Maybe you could, uh. Send that now? Before I get back there?â
You blink. âDonât you have to go all the way back across campus? How slow do you think I type?â He shrugs, and you give up on the idea of getting rid of him. âFine. Whatâs your name, anyway?â
âLee Chan. Iâm a sophomore. Do you know that guy?â
âOh. I thought for sure you were a freshman, but youâre gonna need to be more specific, Lee Chan, Sophomore.â
âThe guy they want you to tutor.â You freeze. The guy they want you to tutor isââChoi Seungcheol,â Chan tacks on, and, yeah, you knowâknew, you correct yourselfâsomeone with that name, once upon a time.
But there are a lot of Chois and a lot of Seungcheols. Itâs been years since youâve spoken to the Seungcheol you knew, and that was when heâd broken up with you toââI heard heâs a football player? Well, used to be, I guess. The girls in the office were freaking out so I guess heâs pretty famous, but I donât know anything about sports, do you? They said they have photocards of him. I thought they only did that for idols.â
You think about being kids together in Daegu. Think about the exasperated looks youâd share when your parents would drag the two of you to festivals: Palgongsan in the autumn, Biseulsan in the spring; transformation and rebirth. Think about being eight years old and watching your father cram into the small space of the Choisâ living room, standing around the TV with Seungcheolâs dad, shouting at Park Jonghwan. Daegu FC made the FA Cup quarterfinals that year, and you think, of everything, thatâs what youâll remember for the rest of your life.
You think about falling in love slowly. Sixteen and clueless, the pair of you were. Didnât really know any different, just that youâd look at him and feel butterflies. That youâd hold hands in secret. Text beneath the dinner table. That youâd watch him on the football pitch and be consumed by pride. That the future felt impossibly far away, that life would never catch up to the two of you.
You think about all the football jargon you didnât understandâthe academies, the teams, the implications. You think about, Iâm thinking about trying out for the FC Seoul U-18, I just donât think thereâs much more I can do here in Daegu. You think about replying, Oh, I applied to university there.
You remember thinking it mustâve been fate, how easy that had worked out. How easy that first hurdle had been overcome.
You think about how fast everything happened. The try-out, the acceptance, the explosion. Remember being unable to go anywhere those first few months without seeing Seungcheolâs face, touted as the next big thing. Think about applying for scholarships when he was applying for international visas. Think about studying for midterms when Seungcheol was studying English for interviews.
You think about the last few weeks of your relationship, when it felt like you were desperately trying to cling to ghosts. Think about how Seoul had once felt endlessly big, both in opportunity and size, and how it now felt suffocating. You think about, So youâre just giving up? Is that what youâre saying? Think about, I donât know what else to do. It doesnât feel fair to you.
You think about all the places youâve watched him. On countless football pitches; shy glances in school hallways; in the passenger seat, wracked with nerves on the drive to Seoul; poised above you in bed, hairline dotted with sweat as he rolled his hips, telling you how much he loved you.
You think about watching him walk out the door, and how you never watched him again.
So you fire off your email, concise and to the point about why you canât tutor Choi Seungcheol in Introduction to Microeconomics, and turn to Lee Chan, Sophomore.
âNo,â you finally answer. âNever heard of him.â
For all intents and purposes, your rejection shouldâve been the end of it.
A few days go by. You hold office hours, attend lectures, work on your thesis when you have both the time and the energy. Try to ignore the feeling of bees beneath your skin, anxiety needling each time you check your email. You were well within your right to decline the tutoring request, but you canât help but feel like youâve done something wrong. That someone somehow knows who Seungcheol was to you and will pull you up on it. That those girls whoâd gushed about him to Chan are somewhere laughing at your expense.
But you donât hear anything at all about it⊠until you do.
Sunday evening. You havenât moved from your couch in hours, some variety show playing in the background, barely audible over your keyboard clacking. Much to your detriment, you donât write many papers these days, so youâre out of practice. Feels like you havenât done anything besides formulas in years, all of your academic knowledge reduced to fucking math, so youâre about ready to toss your laptop out the window long before the email even comes through.
You see, From: Lee Yeonseok. You see, Subject: Choi Seungcheol - Tutoring.
Your stomach plummets to the floor.
You scan the body quickly. You see the words personal favor⊠friend of his father⊠urgent matter⊠and your hands start shaking. Whether itâs from the sheer audacity of this man or anxiety, you arenât sure, but itâs not like it matters. There arenât a whole lot of people on campus brave or dumb enough to go up against him twice.
âMotherfucker,â you spit, bitter the only taste in your mouth.
Where did you go wrong to wind up here? Youâd followed the script: got the grades, passed the exams, received half of the required education for the Respectable Career, helped a few others along the way chase dreams that may or may not have been their own. Youâd fallen in love. Only had a broken heart to show for it, but thatâd been in the script, too: The First Love, followed by The First Heartbreak.
The split from Seungcheol was supposed to have been the end of that chapter. Youâd planned on never seeing him again, and you never would have, had it been up to you. Apparently the universe has other plans, participation required.
âDid you spill onion dip on the rug again?â You startle, sending your laptop flying. Kaori, your roommate, is perched halfway in between the living room and the kitchen like a cryptid, clearly not expecting your reaction. âOh. Were you watching porn?â
Face burning, you fetch your laptop from the floor. âIn a common area? Kaori, please, I have far more decorum than that.â
She snorts, resuming her trek to the fridge. âSee, thatâs what I thought, but then I walked out here and you threw your laptop so fast it was like watching my ex get caught watching furry porn all over again.â She pries the lid off a large container of yogurt. âYou think this is still good?â
âDunno. Whatâs it smell like?â
She sniffs it and pulls it back to check the label. âVanilla, I think, which is concerning because itâs supposed to be strawberry.â
You shrug. âWhatâs the worst that can happen, you get extraââyou pause, trying to remember the correct order of things, before giving up entirelyââ...biotics?â
âMm, so close. Care if I just eat this with a spoon?â
Nose scrunched, you wave her off. âCouldnât pay me to eat yogurt on a good day, let alone if itâs expired. All yours, babe.â
Spoon in hand and a pleased smile on her face, Kaori collapses onto the couch beside you. You try to return your attention to your paper, try to find your momentum again, and it works for all of ten minutes before youâre groaning and slamming the top closed.
You donât even need to look over to know Kaoriâs staring. âWhatâs up with you?â she asks. Before she can answer: âWait, is this serious? Because I canât have a serious conversation in this t-shirt.â You steal a glance sideways. Ask Me About My Hemorrhoid! it says, and you exhale loudly. âDonât breathe at me, I lost a bet.â
âAnd continued wearing it?â
She jokingly rolls her eyes. âGod forbid a girl has hobbies.â Nudges you with her foot. âCâmon, spill.â
Kaori doesnât know about you and Seungcheol. Most people donât, aside from a few old classmates from Daegu who found you on social media and tried befriending you once he started making a name for himself in Seoul. After that, it was just easier to keep things private while you were together. New friends knew you were seeing someone but not their name or how long youâd been together. Any curiosity surrounding why the Choi Seungcheol was following you on Insta had been waved away easily. Our parents are friends, we grew up together. Then you broke up, and there wasnât any evidence to delete, and he wasnât following you on Instagram anymore, and it was easier that way.
So, yeahâeven though you hadnât met her until years later, Kaori knows you have an ex. She knows youâve had a few flings and situationships in the time since, too, and itâs why sheâs none the wiser when you ask, âItâs nothing, really. Justâdo you follow football at all?â
âNah, not really. The new guyâs pretty into it and keeps trying to get me to watch the games with him, but itâs so fucking boring? I dunno, I canât get into it. Not in real life, anywayâI binged all of Captain Tsubasa in an embarrassingly short amount of time, though. Why?â
âStudent Services asked me to tutor someone the other day and I had to turn it down. I just donât have the time, you know? This semesterâs already killer, and Dr. Ahnâs been riding my ass nonstop about grades. Turns out itâs some football player, so Dr. Lee emailed me asking me to do it as a personal favor, which means, on top of all the other shit I have to do, Iâm now tutoring some football player four hours a week in Microeconomics.â
Her face distorts. âGod, that guyâs such a prick. Like wow, youâre good at the economy! Good for you! Who cares! Why donât you go balance the national debt or something instead of torturing university freshmen!â
You also wrongly assume thatâs the last youâll hear of it from Kaori.
Two days later, after Student Services replies to your email with the days and times youâll be tutoring Seungcheol, she materializes in the living room to harass you.
âYou didnât tell me your football player was Choi Seungcheol.â
The panic is instant. You know how she means it, but itâs not how your body interprets it. All of a sudden it feels like an interrogation, an accusation, and a whopping serving of guilt takes up residence in the middle of your chest for not being entirely honest.
âExplains this weird text Ken sent me.â
She slides her phone over to you, open to her text thread with her current flavor of the week. Beneath an article about Seungcheol enrolling in classes at your school:
doesnât ur roomie TA there Why are you calling her âur roomieâ like you donât know her name?? Rude. Also yes. ask her to get me an autograph No babe pls he was my fav player before he got injured No đ fine. can i come over later? Starting to think youâre using me for my roommate. Get your own job đ
You hand her phone back. âI didnât think youâd know who Choi Seungcheol even is.â Itâs the best you can do, even though it just digs you a deeper grave. âYou said youâre not into football.â
âIâm not, but unfortunately I am into that stupid man.â She sighs, wistful and longing. âBabe, you have to understand. His dick is so big.â
You hadnât wanted to stay in Seoul for your graduate degree, let alone the same university youâd gone to for undergrad.
Youâd applied to schools all overâJapan, Europe, even a few in the States. Romanticized the hell out of NYU, went window shopping for an overpriced apartment, picked a favorite pizzeria based on nothing but vibes and online reviews. In those few months after graduation, there wasnât a whole lot tying you to Seoul. Your and Seungcheolâs relationship had been old history by then, your parents split. Your dad stayed in your childhood home and your mother moved a few hours closer to her sister. Theyâd waited until your brother was old enough to be out of the house.
And itâd just been⊠a lot. Overwhelming. Some days you could barely shower or feed yourself, let alone move halfway across the world, so youâd stayed in the familiar and tried not to let it feel like failure.
But the good thing about familiarity is you learn its tricks, figure out the hiding spots. Early on, your first or second week of grad school, you laid claim to a study room on a floor of the library everyone else ignored. You write notes on the whiteboard with faded blue markers that are still there days later. The chair on the opposite side of the table is always exactly where you left it, the space between it and the table enough to only accommodate you. Sometimes you leave booksâold paperbacks littered with notes in your writingâor papers, just to see if they move.
They never do.
And all of this is why it feels like a punch to the gut when that sanctity is tainted. When youâre halfway through a stack of Dr. Ahnâs exams and the doorknob rattles behind you. When you donât even need to turn around to know who it is, because he still sounds the same, still has that overwhelming presence. Youâve always sensed him before you felt him.
âThere you are,â Dr. Lee says, ambling into the room before you can protest. He, too, is overwhelming, just in different ways. Immaculate posture that anchors his slight frame thatâs always dressed impeccably and expensively. Wears a watch thatâs triple your tuition. Shoes polished so bright theyâre nearly blinding. âIâve been looking all over for you.â
This time it is an accusation.
Well, you found me, you want to say, but just knowing Seungcheol is behind him, lingering in that half-study room, half-hallway space, is enough to keep you quiet. Like if you speak youâll summon him closer and youâll no longer be able to pretend this is nothing more than a nightmare.
You plaster on a polite smile. Say, âAh, here I am, kyosu-nim,â and put all your energy into trying to glue Seungcheol to the floor with your mind.
Which is fruitless, because Dr. Lee moves further into the room. Gestures for Seungcheol to follow him with an impatient huff, and the study room is small, sure, and with three people it feels cramped, but thatâs not the reason it feels like all the airâs been sucked out of the room.
Seungcheol looks⊠different. He looks as anxious as you feel, and he sticks close to the wall like heâs trying to disappear. Dr. Lee introduces him with grave importance, unaware of your history, and the forced smile he offers you almost looks embarrassed.
You know Dr. Lee is still hammering away, probably giving you a stern talking-to for rejecting his request the first time, but you canât tear your eyes away from Seungcheol. Feels like the world around you has reduced to a pinhead, all hyperfocus; feels like your lungs are sucking in stale air one at a time.
â...his father is a very good friend of mine, so I expectâŠâ
You expected to feel nothing. Seungcheol had left to chase his dreamâone youâd always been so supportive of that it sometimes felt like your dream, tooâand, perhaps naively, you thought the distance and the years wouldâve been enough. You expected your heart to have hardened. You expected all those nights you spent crying to hit you at full force. You expected anger, hurtâindifference, at the very least.
â...as many hours per week as you both can manageâŠâ
But you shouldâve known better. Shouldâve expected the butterflies, the way your palms grow clammy, the way your heart rate spikes. Shouldâve expected everything to feel upside-down. You shouldâve expected to look at Seungcheol and feel sixteen and in love all over again.
â...you are responsible for his academic progressâŠâ
And that simply will not do. Youâve spent the last few years pulling yourself out of that hole, clawing your way back to something resembling normal. Youâve purged the thought of him from your mindâlet his scent fade from your sheets, an old sweatshirt heâd left behind; forgot the way his lips felt against every inch of your skin; forgot the way his entire being lit up when he laughed; forgot the safety he encompassed, the way he whispered all those sweet nothings.
You cannot go there again.
So you roll your shoulders back, smile politely. Say, âAh, kyosu-nim, Choi Seungcheol-ssi seems very intelligent, Iâm sure he is capable of being responsible for his own academic standing, donât you think?â
Dr. Lee cannot disagree without all but calling Seungcheol an idiot, so he hovers before you in shocked silence. Makes a show of huffing and checking his watch, like heâs all of a sudden remembered heâs late for something and being inconvenienced by this conversation he started, and then heâs halfway out of the library with a terse, âDiscuss and figure this out amongst yourselves,â thrown over his shoulder.
You have an entire dramatic exit planned in your head. Gather your things, fake a phone call that makes you sound authoritative and important, and brush past Seungcheol wearing your nicest perfume as if all of this is so far beneath you you canât even bring yourself to care about it.
Of course, you actually have to brush by him for any of that to happen, and since youâve already decided you will not go there again, you quickly scribble your email address onto a piece of paper and slide it across the table at Seungcheol, who has steadfastly remained planted just outside the door. âHereâs my email. I donât have time to discuss this right now.â Seungcheol cocks an eyebrow. You start throwing things into your bag haphazardly. You know you look frantic and affected, but thereâs not much you can do about that. âWhat? Send me a copy of your syllabus and what you want to prioritize. Itâll be easier to get through this if we have a plan instead of winging it.â
He seems to catch on to your distaste because he mirrors it. Scoffs as he rolls his eyes and says, âYeah, no use spending more time together than we have to,â and if you hadnât gone years without speaking, you wouldâve seen right through it.
But you did, so it stings all the same.
As it typically does, the planet keeps spinning after your run-in with Seungcheol.
You grade Dr. Ahnâs coursework. Try running off your anxiety at the gym, even though itâs pretty good at keeping pace with you these days. You meet Kaoriâs maybe-boyfriend sneaking out of your apartment early in the morning and he has the good sense not to mention your ex, but you chalk that up to the mess of hickeys covering his neck and not any sense of social decorum.
Other peopleâs embarrassment saves you a ton of your own, youâve come to learn.
Throughout all of this, Seungcheol only emails you once to send you his course syllabus. Doesnât mention tutoring or provide you with his schedule or ask for yours, so when youâre sitting in a bar with your friends, three or four drinks deep and feeling a little petty, you forward him the original tutoring request and make sure to bold, underline, and highlight the âRecommended Tutoring: Highâ part for good measure.
He doesnât take your baitâelectronically, at leastâbut he does show up to your office hours the following Tuesday.
Bag tossed onto the floor, he flops unceremoniously into the chair across from you and says, in lieu of a greeting, âThey spelled your name wrong. On the door thing.â
âI know,â you reply, your smile polite and terse. Incredible how he has the ability to raise your blood pressure in milliseconds. âWhat can I help you with?â
âDepends. How long do you have?â
âWell, considering youâve shown up to my office hours on time, Iâm assuming you already know Iâm here every Tuesday and Thursday from four to six. Soââyou glance at the clock above the doorââassuming no one comes by who needs my help more than you do, you have approximately one hour and fifty-eight minutes.â
Seungcheol is quiet for a moment as he takes you in. His stare is weighted; it makes you feel a little green around the edges. Clinical and sharp, so far removed from the way he used to look at you. You clear your throat. âI looked over your syllabus. The good news is thereâs only a midterm and a final and the rest is problem sets. The bad news is thereâs only a midterm and a final so theyâre weighted quite heavily. You really need to know this stuff inside-out to have any hope of passing.â
âThatâs why youâre here, right? Dr. Lee specifically requested you.â
You huff a breath through your nose. âIâm here as supplemental help. I canât take your exams or do your readings for you. What else are you taking this semester?â
He sighs, sinking further into the chair, very much playing the part of the heir who has no interest in any of this. Which⊠is unlike him, you think, if youâre even allowed to. The Seungcheol you knew years ago took everything so seriously. Never clipped corners or took shortcuts. Anyone else would think him a spoiled, petulant child. âBusiness Accounting and International Trade.â
âCould be worse,â you note. âAt least those three courses are tangentially related.â
Seungcheol rolls his eyes. âEasy for you to say. I havenât taken a fucking math class in years.â
You return it. âYou remember how to add and subtract, donât you?â
âI ruptured my ACL, not myâŠâ He trails off, looking a little embarrassed that he canât name a part of theââBrain.â
Whatever you were going to quip back with dies on your tongue. It's the first time Seungcheol has broached the topic of his injuryâthe first youâre hearing of it at all, actuallyâand he says it like itâs a joke, like itâs not a thing at all, but the pain is all over his face. The bitterness of the situation heâs found himself in. The unfairness of it all.
And there are so many questions you want to ask that arenât your place: if itâs fixable, if heâll ever play again, how heâs coping. But you donât really need toâyou canât imagine how youâd feel if someone suddenly pulled the rug out from under you. If everything contained within the four walls of your office suddenly disappeared.
Not that the man sitting across from you hadnât already done that, but.
âRight,â you continue, as if he hadnât said anything at all. You know Seungcheolâknow he wouldnât want you prodding, sticking your fingers in that particular wound. âI want you to take a look at this,â you say, handing over a printout you have saved from your undergrad tutoring days. âTell me what looks familiar, what doesnât; what does and doesnât make sense.â
He looks down at the paper. Back up at you. Down at the paper again. âWhat the fuck is this?â
âIâwhat? Cheol, itâs my old notes on recitation. Surely youâve already covered thisâthe syllabus says this is week one stuff.â He looks down at the paper again, and itâs so familiar, watching the life drain entirely from someoneâs eyes.
You barely resist the urge to slam your face onto your desk a second time.
You meet Seungcheol at the sports center for your next tutoring session.
He likes the humidity and the smell of the chlorine by the pool. He also likes that itâs not the football pitch, so the two of you sit in the bleachers there and go over his lecture notes. Much to your surprise, Seungcheol talks a mile a minute. Has stars in his eyes when he says he finally understands elastic demand curves, supply shock; tells you he spent a whole hour making flashcards.
Itâs the first time youâve seen him so excited since your tutoring beganâthe first glimmer of hope youâve felt since Dr. Lee cornered you in your library hideaway. None of this surprises you. Seungcheol has always been smart, even when football was his primary (and sometimes only) focus. He has more determination and grit than anyone youâve ever met, so youâre not surprised heâs doing well, excelling, but you are surprisedâ
âCan I ask you something?â Seungcheol shrugs, shoves half a protein bar in his mouth and swallows without chewing. âWhy are you⊠uh. Here?â
âAt this university?â
âNot exactly. I mean, I am wondering about that, but I guess⊠why business?â
Seungcheol hums. Tucks his good knee to his chest and stares down at the pool. No oneâs using it, and truthfully the two of you probably arenât even allowed to be here, but you understand why he likes it. Itâs nowhere near as secluded as the library and definitely not as air conditioned, but it is peaceful. Calm. The water laps against the coping in quiet, small waves.
âAh, I donât know. You know how it goes.â
You quirk an eyebrow. Never, in all the years youâve known him, has Seungcheol done anything he didnât want to do. All that grit and determination. âWhat about your father, then? Dr. Lee mentioned this was a favor to him. Heâs a pretty important person to have in your Rolodex of favors.â
Doesnât take a rocket scientist to see what this is: Seungcheolâs father has new money; worked from the bottom up, made some smart investment decisions that finally panned out after Seungcheol left for Seoul. Started doing his own thing, made a name for himself. Last youâd heard from your mother, Seungcheolâs brother was second-in-command. Hell, even your own brother did an internship there.
So you know what this is: a father helping his son after his dream was shattered, life turned upside-down. You canât blame him, even if youâve heard the whispers from all the way across campus. That Seungcheol is washed up now, trying to nepo his way into his fatherâs company because of it; that all he knows is sports and he shouldâve stuck to that, what does he know about business, why is he the one Dr. Lee went out of his way to help.
Doesnât stop any of them from smiling at him, though; doesnât stop them from asking for autographs or selfies.
But you also know this isnât something Seungcheol seems willing to discuss, so you crack a jokeââI mean, business. God, whoâd wanna go into that?ââand go back to what he was willing to talk about.
Youâve never hated elastic demand curves so much in your life.
Deep in the throes of tutoringâwhen you canât tell if itâs week two or week twelveâyou make it back to your apartment just before ten, head pounding.
The door flies open just as youâre about to punch in the code, and there stands Ken, looking far more put-off than youâve ever seen him. Looks defeated, if youâre being honest, like someone mopped up all his emotions and wrung them out like dirty dishwater.
âOh, hi,â you say hesitantly. The man in front of you seems too much like a caged animal to let your guard down. âEverything okay?â
He aborts a nod halfway. Mutters an apology as he brushes by you and stalks down the hall, disappearing around the corner to the elevators. Usually heâs a talkerâyou havenât been able to avoid a Seungcheol-related conversation in weeksâso youâre a little stunned. Stand there stupidly for a while, and thatâs where Kaori finds you a moment later.
âYou gonna stand out here all night, orâŠ?â
âOhâyeah, right.â
You follow her inside. Toe off your shoes and put them in the rack. Focus on the sound of the kettle whistling instead of the overbearing tension in the room. Drop your bag off in your room, throw on a sweatshirt three sizes too big and a comfy pair of socks. Rummage through the fridge for leftovers, contemplate what mindless show youâll watch as you eat, and you do not, under any circumstances, ask Kaori what happened.
You donât have to. You knew what this was going to be the first time Ken spent the nightâthe way he looked mortified to be meeting you in the shared kitchen at seven a.m., wearing a look that begged you not to tell your roommate he was sneaking out.
I, uh, have an early class, heâd said. You know how it is.
Maybe you shouldâve called him on it then. Issued a warning-but-not-really. Sheâll get attached if you donât tell her. She should know itâs different for you, if it is.
But youâd convinced yourself it wasnât your place. Kaori wouldnât want you in her business like that, so you stayed quiet, just nodded before watching him slip his shoes on and close the door behind him so quietly you wouldnât have known he left at all if you hadnât been looking. Gone, just like a ghost.
So, yeah, you know exactly why your roommate looks haunted.
âIâm a few episodes behind on this if you want to watch with me,â you offer, pointing at the television with the remote. Itâs a lieâyouâve never watched this show a day in your life, which Kaori seems to knowâbut she contemplates it nonetheless. âAlso, my mom mailed us some cookies. I think theyâre in the fridge.â
âWhy are there cookies in the fridge?â
You huff a laugh. âThey were outside the door this morning before I left for campus. I donât knowâjust saw who the package was from and was like, oh, this must go in the fridge.â
She nods. Grabs the container and joins you on the couch. Sticks her feet beneath your butt and doesnât mention a thing.
The closest she comes is a few days later. Catches you right before you head out to campus and asks how tutoring is going.
âNot bad, actually.â
Her smile doesnât reach her eyes when she says, âThatâs good. Iâm glad things are going well for you two.â
Lee Chan, Sophomore makes his unexpected return at your office hours on an unsuspecting Tuesday.
âCan I help you?â
He doesnât answer right away, just helps himself to the seat across from you. âMaybe,â comes his cryptic retort. âI was thinking about signing up for that crypto course next semester.â
You narrow your eyes. âNo, you werenât.â
He sighs. Looks a little panicked, like he canât believe that didnât work. âYouâre right, youâre right. I, umâI wanted to come say thank you.â He pauses. âYou know, for that⊠email you sent.â
You blink. âNo, you didnât.â
Lee Chan, Sophomore cracks immediately. Thunks his head on your desk and lets loose a pained sound. It nearly sounds like heâs wailing when he says, âIâm sorry! They put me up to it!â
What youâre able to piece together is this: Lee Chan, Sophomore has become a bit of a celebrity in the Student Services department ever since he met you, Choi Seungcheolâs tutor. And, like any smart, previously unpopular university student would do, he took advantage of it. Mightâve stretched the truth a little to make it sound like he knew more than he did, so now here he is, angling for information the girls with the photocards may or may not have paid him to get.
âThey want to know about his girlfriend.â
âHis what?â
What youâre able to piece together is also this: the Photocard Girls are certain Seungcheol is dating someone, based on little more than vibes. You suspect these vibes are their three degrees of separation, considering there was an abnormal amount of Change of Major files formed after his enrollment, but you tell Lee Chan that you donât know anything and, even if you did, you wouldnât put his business out there like that.
But some part of you still has this inexplicable urge to protect Seungcheol, so you match their offer with interest and tell him to say thereâs nothing to reportânot that you didnât know, not that he couldnât get anything out of you. Seungcheol isnât dating anyone.
You donât know if itâs true, but you figure that if it isnât, he still deserves privacy.
Which is a notion you have trouble explaining a few hours later, when Seungcheol strolls into your office with a grease-stained paper bag full of cheese coin bread, offering one to you with a proud smile that drops slowly when you just stare in return.
âWhatâs wrong?â
Your mouth opens, closes, opens again. Nothing comes out, even though it should be simple. Some sophomore kid was just in here angling for information or the Student Services department is taking bets on whether or not you have a girlfriend would both suffice, but you cannot bring yourself to say the words.
What you settle on is, âSorry, I just⊠had an interesting meeting before you got here.â
âOh. Are you okay?â
You sigh. Tilt your head back to stare up at the ceiling. âIt was about you, actually.â
Seungcheol chokes, starts stuttering over words you canât make sense of. Says, âMe? Why? I passed my last examâI mean, barely, but I still passed. And that wasnât your fault! I didnât study enough! Iâve been losing my mind over my International Trade class, that shit sucksââ
âIt wasnât about your grades, Cheol.â
âOh.â Then, slowly, a lopsided, pleased smile overtakes his face. âHavenât heard you call me Cheol in a while.â
âSeungcheol,â you correct.
He seems to forget all about the meeting. Tries again to offer you a coin bread before he threatens to eat them all himself, so you acquiesce mostly to shut him up, say youâll bring the extras to Kaori. For some reason, you tell him about how much sheâd loved the cookies your mom sent, and the nostalgia sets him off, gets him talking again, asking if they were the yakgwa she used to make when you two were kids.
They were, but you canât seem to tell him that, either.
Seungcheol: sorry itâs last minute - running late. can you meet me at my place instead?
Seungcheol shared a location with you
Youâre halfway to replyingâI donât think thatâs appropriateâbefore you sigh and delete it. Midterms are only a few days away and you donât have time to argue over where your tutoring sessions will be, so if Seungcheol wants to meet at his apartment thatâs where youâll meet him.
You read over the midterm notes on the train. Once, twice, and then a hundred more times until theyâre nearly memorized, all so you can ignore the voice in the back of your head saying what a bad idea this is. That you have no business being on your way to your exâs swanky part of town or integrating yourself into his life beyond tutoring at all. You shouldnât know where he lives. Maybe you shouldnât even have his phone number or answer his texts.
Not that thereâs much you can do about it now, two stops away.
Seungcheol greets you warmly, if not a little rushed. Apologizes for the mess once you step inside, although itâs less âmessâ and more âhavenât finished unpacking,â but thereâs enough clear space to study at the dining table, so thatâs where you set up, determined to keep things professional.
âSorry again about this,â Seungcheol says, placing a can of cola in front of you as he takes the seat across. âI had to meet with my father and lost track of time, I guess.â
âOh. Howâs he doing?â
Seungcheol sighs, leans further back in the chair as runs a hand through his hair. A light brown, now. âSame as he always was, I guess. Talked about the business, about my brother. Canât get him to shut up about that stuff most of the time.â
âThe business is doing good, though.â You cough, clear your throat. âMy, uh. My brother interned there during undergrad. I donât know if your father told you that.â
You donât know why you say it, because itâs clear from the brief flicker of pain on Seungcheolâs face that he hadnât known, that no one had told him. And it hurts you too that they felt the need to keep it a secret, to protect Seungcheol from you even in tangential ways.
âHe didnât,â he admits, âbut Iâm sure he was happy to see him. He was, uhâhe was glad to hear youâre my tutor. Said you were always smarter than all of us boys combined.â
You laugh. Hope it sounds casual instead of strained. âWell, no need to prove him right. Come on,â you say, tossing a study guide in his direction, âletâs get to work.â
Everything is alright for a whileânearly an hour at least. He has the formulas memorized and attributed to the correct equations. He can explain supply and demand, preference and utility, but things start to fall apart around budget constraints and constrained choice.
The formulas get mixed up. He grows frustrated when he doesnât know the answers to your questions right away. Rolls his eyes and gets a little snappy when you correct him, try to explain things differently in a way he understands. At first heâs able to temper it, collect himself before things truly start spiraling out of control, but the longer the two of you sit there the more it all unravels.
He snaps, you snap back, and you canât figure out why. Youâve survived this long in Seungcheolâs orbit even though you never thought youâd be around him again, and perhaps it was bound to explode eventually, butâŠ
Itâs the familiarity, you realize.
You and Seungcheol arenât friends, though youâve been playing at it for weeks now: meeting outside of the library or your office, the personal conversations bordering on reminiscing, being in his personal space. You donât belong here. You donât want to be his friendâyou canât be, not for real or pretend.
âThatâs not what Iâm sayââ
âThen explain it better,â Seungcheol fires at you, eyebrows creasing. âYouâre the tutor here.â
You roll your eyes. âIâm trying, okay? All I meant wasâyour answer isnât wrong, but I know Dr. Lee and heâs going to want more than that in a response.â
âRightânot good enough, like I said.â
âIâm just asking you to expand on your answerââ
âAnd Iâm telling you thatâs all Iâve got. Iâm not like you, all right? I donât have all this shit just floating around in my head all the time. Iâm not smart, I barely have any idea whatâs going on half the time, and you sitting here being condescending about it is doing fuck-all to help.â
You inhale sharply, taken aback at the hostility in his voice. Suggest calling it for the night, say neither of you will be productive if you keep going like this, and neither of you bother to apologize.
So much of your relationship with Seungcheol was marred by clichés.
The two of you passing notes back and forth during class. You in the bleachers of all his games, screaming along to the team chants, waving a sign around with his name on it. Not realizing you had a crush on him at all until he liked someone else and it made your stomach hurt. Childhood friends turned lovers.
Another clichĂ©: that itâs starting to feel like that all over again.
Seungcheol sits across from you in the library, econ textbook cracked in half in front of him as he pays no attention. Keeps grabbing his phone each time it vibrates across the table. Canât fight the smile that forces its way onto his face when he reads whateverâs there.
Stupid, you thinkâboth to do this and to think itâd play out any other way. Seungcheol left years ago. Probably lived ten lifetimes while he was away while you were here in this exact spot doing this exact thing. Barely lived half a life, just stuck your nose in textbooks and forced your way through.
âCheol,â you say, trying to drag his attention back to the study guide. No use. Heâs typing away, presses his tongue into the fat of his cheek as he responds. âSeungcheol,â you try again.
Also fruitless.
You have no claim here, you remind yourselfânot to his time, not to him. Heâs only here because someone else mandated it. Youâre only here because someone else mandated it, but it stings all the same. Another reminder of what used to be, of what ended regardless of what you wanted. Another reminder that the role you used to play in his life is not the role you play now. That the space you used to take up created a vacancy, and eventually it was going to be filled.
And if this was anyone other than Seungcheol, if you were more emotionally evolved when it came to him, it wouldnât gnaw at you as much. All of this would roll off your shoulders.
But it isnât, and youâre not.
âIf youâre not going to listen, thenââ
âI am listening,â he interjects, but heâs not looking at you. Not looking at his textbook or his study guide. Keeps laughing and smiling at his phone, and itâs sick how bothered you are by it. That it feels like your stomachâs been turned inside-out with jealousy; with annoyance, because you donât want to be here anyway, donât want to do this anymore, and youâre wasting your time on someone who doesnât appreciate it.
Perhaps he never did.
âWhat are we discussing, then?â
Still not looking up: âConsumer theory.â
You laughâmore a huff of air than anything, grin sardonically out of one corner of your mouth. Seungcheol sees none of it. âWrong,â you answer, already expecting the way he shrugs it off. âIâm gonna skip ahead a few chapters, though. Consider it a freebie for your business class.â
It must be your tone that finally grabs his attention. Cutting, precise, purposeful. Seungcheol lowers his phone, quirks an eyebrow, wonders where this is going to go. Itâs clear heâs pissed you off, that youâre itching for a fight. Itâs clear the years of silence are finally coming to a head.
âLetâs talk about ROI. You know what that is?â You barely give him a second. âReturn on investment. A performance measure used to evaluate the efficiency of an investment or compare the efficiency of several investments. So, letâs say I make one-hundred-thousand won on a ten-thousand won investment: my ROI is 90%. Are you following?â
He nods.
âGreat, now letâs try something a bit more hypothetical.â You suck in a breath. âLetâs say I invest years of my adolescence into someone. A friend at first and then something more. Letâs say I played cheerleader, supported every hope and dream he hadâwent to every game, cheered him on, helped him practice his English. Held his hand and talked him down when the pressure felt overwhelming, when the only thing that felt inevitable was failure. Now, letâs say all I got in return was a stuttered, awkward apology as he dumped me and walked out the door. Letâs say that guy showed up again after years of silence just to once again waste my fucking time.â
The thing about pain is itâs not linear. What hurt five, ten years ago might not hurt today, but it might tomorrow; what hurt yesterday may never hurt again. The thing about pain is it lets you stick your head in the sand until it canât anymore, and thatâs where you are now: that window of time between Seungcheol walking out the door on the assumption youâd never see him again before he bulldozed his way back into your life has been slammed closed, locked up tight.
So you donât even notice youâre crying until the room goes deathly silent and you can hear the drip drip drip of tears on paper. Until you watch Seungcheolâs hands flex and unflex in mid-air, stuck in that liminal space, wanting to reach out but knowing he has no right to. Until your chest aches so bad youâre sure youâre either about to break into stardust or cease to exist.
Until you say, âWhat, Choi Seungcheol, would you say my fucking return on investment was?â and he has nothing to say at all.
Kaori invites you to a party.
Just something small to celebrate the end of midterms and a classmateâs birthday. Nothing out of control or raucous, not even the kind of thing thatâd earn a second glance from campus security. I wonât even make fun of you if you leave before eleven, is how she sold it to you, in addition to a small amount of begging and bargaining and a powerful set of puppy-dog eyes.
After everything the two of you have been through, you find it hard to say no.
So here you are, nearly eleven oâclock on a Friday, a cup of cheap beer in hand. A friend of a friend of a friend is wailing into a karaoke machine and although your ears are bleeding, it does feel nice for that to be your greatest worry. You arenât thinking about your classes or how youâve been prioritizing everyone elseâs academic success. You arenât thinking about whateverâs going on between Kaori and Ken. You arenât thinking about Seungcheol.
At least you arenât, until he walks through the door.
Youâre going to continue not thinking about him at allânot about the fact heâs alone or how good he looks in a simple black T-shirt thatâs a little taut in the shoulders. Youâre not going to think about the way the air shifts, like the universe knows heâs important and is willing to accommodate. Youâre not going to think about how Kaori catches your eye across the room, recognizes him from all her internet searches, and the way she mouths oh my god heâs so beefy at you.
Youâre not going to think about how guilty you feel that she doesnât know, because if you do youâre certain itâll take over.
You watch Seungcheol work the room; watch as he floats between conversations, as strangers fall over themselves at the sight of him. How eager everyone is to give him something and how reluctant he is to take them. You watch as he winds up in the same circle as Kaori and how she must mention you, oh, your tutor is my roommate, because thereâs a question in return before he turns and meets your gaze.
You wonder why the distance between you feels more insurmountable now than ever before.
Seungcheol finds you in your office.
Itâs not a Tuesday or a Thursday, far later than four to six in the evening, but he doesnât even bother knocking before heâs barreling in, stifling your space with his bad energy.
You havenât seen him in nearly two weeks. Not since the party, if that even counts. Hasnât bothered to reply to any of your texts or emails, and that was just fine by you, if thatâs how he wanted to act, but it isnât until heâs brooding on the other side of your desk that you realize youâre still aggrieved, too. Feels a little too familiar, him leaving you behind and in the dark.
So you donât mean toâtypically have much more professionalism than thisâbut when he tosses a stapled stack of papers with a barely-passing grade on your desk and says, âThis is your fault,â the words come automatically and without forethought.
âFuck off, Seungcheol.â Itâs not your words that take him by surprise; more so the roll of your eyes, the accompanying huff. The impression that all of this is beneath you and nothing more than a mere annoyance. That however affected you were two weeks ago is not how affected you are anymore. âThatâs what happens when you blow off your tutoring for two weeks because youâre a coward.â
He laughs, incredulous; unable to help the sound the tumbles out of his mouth. âIâm aâIâm a coward?â
âYes,â you reply, tone giving away nothing. All he sees is feigned nonchalance despite the hurricane you feel brewing beneath the surface. âThis,â you continue, pinching the corner of the paper between your fingertips and disposing of it in the trashcan beneath your desk, âis all on you, but do please let me know if thereâs anything else youâd like to blame me for. Iâm all ears.â
You donât miss it: the way Seungcheolâs eyes grow wide at your âIâm all.â The way he thinks youâre going to punctuate that sentence with yours, and it nearly has bile rising in your throat. Makes you want to scream, rip at your hair. If the last few months have taught you anything, itâs that you are still hopelessly in love with the man across from youâthe man that continues to leave before heâs left, always at your expense.
So, yeahâSeungcheol is a coward, but only when it comes to you.
But he doesnât look much like one now, gripping so hard at the edge of your desk that his knuckles have gone white, baseball cap pulled down low enough his eyes are barely visible. Heâs always been overwhelming, always carried himself with an exaggerated arrogance even when it wasnât warranted, always took everything so seriously, and maybe thatâs why youâd thought heâd treat you the same way. Take you seriously. Wouldnât just throw it all away on a maybe thing, and thatâs why it's been years and you still arenât over it.
Maybe Seungcheol is a coward, and maybe so are you.
Because not once since heâs been back have you been able to say what you mean. Canât seem to tell him about the anger, the hurt, the heartbreak. Played it all off as petty nonchalance because you foolishly thought that would hurt him, that youâve been reduced to simmering ash, no hope left for a fire.
âI could never blame you for a goddamn thing,â he says, voice so deep you could drown in it.
You so desperately want to know. You donât want to know anything at all. You want Seungcheol to explain everything to you in detail and spoil the ending, but only if itâs guaranteed to be happy. Enduring another loss like the first timeâyouâre not sure you can take it. Not after you two have crossed paths like this, because youâve never quite believed in fate but you think that has to mean something. That so much time and life had transpired and you two came back together.
Today, though, it doesnât look like youâre going to get any answers.
Seungcheol straightens, looms at full height. Digs into the pocket of his sweatpants and pulls out a thumb drive. Wordlessly, he hands it over, and then heâs gone just as abruptly as heâd arrived.
Again.
Kaori wants to spend the weekend moping, and you canât come up with a good reason not to join her.
She doesnât mention Ken once. Not when sheâs sobbing over A Silent Voice and Toradora! after that. Not when she keeps glancing at her phone every couple minutes to see if she has any texts. Not when youâonly halfway paying attention between grading and your own assignmentsâsuggest ordering something for delivery, maybe that new burger place down the street you heard was good, and Kaori shuts it down so vehemently you can only assume it was Kenâs favorite place.
Kaori just cries over the man with the big dick she never expected to take so seriously, and not even your stonewalling makes her feel ashamed of it.
And thereâs respectability in that kind of openness and vulnerability. At least whatever sheâs feeling is honest; at least she can admit sheâs sad. You think watching Kaori process her breakup might help you process yours too, years too late, so you suck in a breath and ask, âCan I tell you something or is now not a good time?â
Kaori looks over at you. Dabs a soggy tissue at her eyes. âWell, I guess it depends,â is her answer, and she doesnât shy away from how waterlogged her voice sounds. âIf youâre going to tell me youâre a Takasu and Kawashima shipper, maybe, but if itâs anything worse Iâm not sure I could take it.â
âIâwhat? Who even are they?â She gives you a half-hearted thumbs up. You sigh in response, sink further into the couch. âItâs, uh.â Clear your throat. âDo you remember when we met sophomore year? At that party? And I told you I wasnât looking for anything and you said, and I quote, why not, I have a sixth sense for this kind of thing and I know that guy will have a hugeââ
She hides her face behind her hands. âEw, god, yes I remember that. My dick whisperer era. How embarrassing.â
âRight. And I told you I wasnât looking for anything because Iâd just gotten out of something.â
âNot really by choice, if I remember correctly. I told you if it was quiet it shouldâve been loud, and then you never talked about it again.â
You nod. âIâyeah, that sounds like something I wouldâve said.â You suck in a deep breath. âListen, this is probably gonna sound bad considering I did never talk about it again, butââ
âHey,â Kaori says, nudging you with her foot. Meant to be comforting, somehow. âItâs okay. Thereâs a lot you donât know about me, too⊠most of which Iâm not sure you should, actually.â
A laugh forces its way out, gives you a nice reprieve from the anxiety of the conversation youâre about to have. The need to explain it all, the need for advice. Maybe itâs not herâor anyone elseâsâbusiness, but you think youâve kept this to yourself long enough. You and Seungcheol loved each other, once, and it seems foolish that no one knows.
Maybe Kaori had been right. Maybe love should be shouted from the rooftops; exist out in the open. Maybe something hidden in the shadows can never thrive in the light, and you knew it back then, deep down, but now it seems so obvious.
You think back to a few days before the library. Think about how things didnât feel good but they felt okay. Think about the frustrated crease between Seungcheolâs eyebrows as he stared down at his textbook and how all youâd wanted to do was smooth it. Think about how youâd rolled your lips and tried not to laugh; how you thought itâd take a miracle to help Seungcheol pass this class.
Think about: What is the difference between the short-run and the long-run from the perspective of production theory?
Think about the short-run of your and Seungcheolâs relationshipâthat youâd burned bright and fast, even though itâd felt like a million years. Hadnât dared to consider the long-run because anything beyond that bubble felt impossible.
Think about: Which of the following is not a property of isoquants?
Think about the way Seungcheolâs eyes lit up when he knew the answer. That theyâre always linear, he said, and you smiled at his enthusiasm, raised your hand to high-five him and dropped it when he hadnât noticed.
You think about the explanationâisoquants can be linear when inputs are perfectly substitutableâand what those graphs look like. Downward sloping, left to right. Think about how the graphs change when the isoquants are perfect complements.
L-shaped. Less straight as the inputs become poorer substitutes.
You know what your and Seungcheolâs graph wouldâve looked like back then.
So itâs easy, almost, to tell Kaori everything. You tell her about growing up in Daegu, about the smell of the azaleas at Biseulsan in the spring. You tell her about how your parents had befriended the neighbors, how they had a kid your age, that that kid was Seungcheolâyes, that Seungcheol.
Sheâs able to anticipate the rest from there, but you fill in the blanks of what she canât: being sixteen and falling in love, holding hands, the clandestine notes. All those football matches and how your throat would be hoarse from cheering. How nauseous youâd felt applying to university in Seoul, how excited you were when Seungcheol said he was coming with you. That, after you arrived, it felt like you were living in fast-forward. Barely any time to breathe or adjust; no time to just be you and Seungcheol. You had to be a student, someone responsible; Seungcheol had to be a phenom.
âCould you feel it was going to happen?â Kaori asks, now sat ramrod straight, all her attention on you. âLike, did you know?â
âI donât know,â you admit. âMaybe I did? Itâs hard to say now, all this time later. I know things definitely felt different, like life was pulling us in opposite directions.â You laugh, bitterness coloring the edges. âYou couldnât go two blocks without seeing him on some billboard, and I was just⊠normal, you know? I wasnât some rising star athlete like he was, I just went to my classes. How was I supposed to compete with something like that?â
Your roommate hums, leans back into the pillows as she stares up at the ceiling. âI donât think you were. Maybe thatâs why Seungcheol was worriedâmaybe he felt like you were losing your own identity feeling like you had to keep up.â
You want to push back, argue that you werenât, that you didnât, but the truth is that itâs possible. That the shadows created by Seungcheolâs dreams were so massive you wouldnât be surprised if they unintentionally swallowed you up. âIt still wasnât his choice to make,â you say, voice barely above a whisper.
And Kaori already knows all about your hurt, listened as you explained it all and laid everything bare. So when she says, âSometimes thatâs just how it goes, though, babe,â it doesnât feel condescending. âWe do the best we can with what weâve got at the time. You can say now it wasnât Seungcheolâs choice to make, because itâs been almost five years and youâve made a life for yourself separate from him. But theâgod, this is gonna sound so patronizing, I am so sorryâbut you guys were so young. No one has it all figured out at that age.â
She snorts, runs a hand through her messy hair. âShit, Iâm nearly halfway to thirty and I still donât know anything.â Adopts a frown. âWhat do you want now? Do you want closure? Want to try to fix things and become friends?â
âI donât know,â you admit, biting at a hangnail. âHe actually, um. The other day when he stopped by my office, he left me a USB drive? And before you ask, no I did not already look at it.â
âA USB drive? Who does this guy think he is, James Bond?â A pause. âAre you gonna look at it, though?â
You do.
Not until the silver, midnight light creeps in through your bedroom curtains and youâve stared at the ceiling long enough; waited long enough for texts that never came, for divine intervention to, well, intervene. It never didâfair enoughâso you decide to take fate by the reins. Grab your laptop, instant headache from the screen, stick the drive into the port.
It takes a second for it to load, but when it does: dozens of videos, organized by date. Vlogs, by the look of themâsome from before your breakup but the majority of them from after.
Youâre not sure what you expected, but it wasnât this.
You click on the first one: a month and a half before both of you moved to Seoul. A fresh-faced Seungcheol appears on your screen, cheeks still round with adolescence. Heâs in his room back in Daegu, canât get the camera angle right. Nostalgia hits you like a ton of bricks as it pans to the side, to the wall behind his bed, and you see all his old posters. Mostly football players you couldnât name, some girl group he used to love, a few movies. Just below them are some of the notes youâd written him in school, and theyâre all you can focus on as he talks about how excited he is for the move.
The next: a few weeks after youâd started classes. By then, Seungcheol was well into the swing of things with Seoul FC. Already a big fish in a small pond, tryout offers from European teams starting to roll in. You can hear yourself in the background stressing over your first exam, wishing a generational curse upon your calculus professor. In the video, Seungcheol laughs, whispers like heâs telling the camera a secret as he talks about how nervous he is for his future. I donât know why, he says, but it just feels like everything is about to change.
Thereâs a long pause between that one and the next. You understand why when you look at the date: three months after your breakup. Your hands hover uselessly above your keyboard. Whatever answers youâve been looking for the last few years are probably in this video, but you canât bring yourself to open it. Not right away, at least.
You click on a different one at random. Seungcheolâs somewhere in Europe, judging from the language on the signs behind him. Snow falls quietlyâwhenever he filmed this, it mustâve been early. No one else is around, and he cracks a joke that itâs a good thing, people would probably think he was crazy if they saw him. He doesnât tell you where heâs going but he narrates the entire walk: points out a cafe heâs grown to love. The way to get to his practice stadium from where heâs standing. Pauses near a restaurant and laughs ruefully, shakes his head, says, I donât know why Iâm telling you this, but one of my teammates set me up on a blind date here and I got stood up. Youâd probably think that was funny.
(You do. It also makes your chest ache.)
One from two years ago: Seungcheol in a hotel room, clearly nervous. He raises his hand to wave at the camera and you can see the corners of his nails bitten raw. Dark circles beneath his eyes; cheekbones more pronounced than youâve ever seen them. On the screen, Seungcheol sighs, rakes a hand through freshly-bleached hair. Sucks in a deep breath as he says, Iâm so nervous. Iâm soâso fucking nervous and I donât. Fuck, I donât know what to do. I want to call you because you always knew what to say but thatâs so fucking selfish. God, we havenât spoken in years, and itâs myâthatâs my fault, I know, so I brought this all on myself. I just want to hear your voice.
Another from a week after that: the colorâs returned to his face, and heâs recording from what looks like a penthouse apartment. Sleek, modern; a small white dog napping on the bed beside him. He smiles, looks like he got his teeth fixed, looks like heâs no longer carrying around the weight of the world. Talks endlessly and excitedly about some tournament. Talks so fast you can barely keep up. Talks around words tinged with languages you donât understand.
Seungcheol wins a championship. Records a drunk vlog from the same night, hair soaked through with god-knows-whatâwater, champagne, you donât know. But he looks radiant. Looks like the culmination of two decades of dreaming. He looks happy, free, at peace. He looks like the reason he let you go, why he had to go away.
You scroll to the bottom of the files. Pause at the last video, dated seven months before the term started.
âHi,â he says, and you can immediately tell everything is all wrong. Seungcheolâs in the dark, face only visible enough to see the tears tracking on his cheeks. âThis is going to be the last one of these I make. I donât know if you, uhâIâm sure you arenât paying attention to meâmy careerâanymore, but. I, um. I got hurt. Ruptured my ACL. Theyâre not sure IâllâŠâ A sob escapes him. Has you wanting to climb through the screen to hold him, thumb away his tears, tell him everything is going to be okay. âThey donât know if Iâll ever play again.â
Seungcheol no longer looks happy, free, at peace. âMaybe youâll be happy to hear that,â he continues. âMaybe itâll help you to know I threw away our relationship for nothing.â
Cut to black.
The sudden silence is deafening. Has you desperately clicking back to the video youâd skipped, the one from just after your breakup. Seungcheol looks the same in that one, too, like the life has been drained out of him.
I donât know why Iâm doing this. Itâs not like Iâll ever show these to you now, since IâŠ
Iâm sure I owe you an explanation. To be honest, I donât know what Iâm doing, I justâthings have been so hard, and Iâm still trying to make sense of it all. I feel like my life went from zero to a hundred before I could even blink and now Iâm scrambling. I didnât think it was fair toâto drag you through that. Me being away, moving to an entirely different continent. I have faith we could do it, I just. I donât know, baby, I donâtâŠ
You deserve to have your own life. Be your own person. Iâm so scared that the world will never see you for who you areâso beautiful and intelligent and kind. You donât deserve to be reduced to my partner. And if you ever see this, I know youâre gonna roll your eyes. Probably call me a mean name because I took the choice away from you, because you think Iâm trying to be selfless and heroic, and youâd be right. Itâs not fair, and I wish I could tell you Iâm sorry.
I wish I could just⊠pluck out my brain and give it to you, because even if it killed me to do it, at least it makes sense to me. And I donâtâI donât want you to think Iâm not hurting. Iâve been sick to my stomach since I left. I know Iâm making a mistake, I know I am, I justâhow do I do what I think is right in the long-run when itâs not what I want right now, or ever?
I donât want to get over you. I donât want you to get over me, and thatâs how you know Iâm not acting selflessly, because you should. I want you to always be happy, I just⊠wish it was with me.
So, Iâm going to keep making these. Iâm going to take you along for the ride, wherever it takes us, because you should be here but I can only hope you can one day understand why youâre not. Iâm soâIâm so sorry, I donâtâŠ
Iâm sorry.
I love you.
You fall asleep and dream that you were the one meant to meet him at that restaurant.
The first thing you do is make a call to your mother.
âCould you send another container of yakgwa?â
On the other end of the line, your mother tuts, motherly intuition audibly kicking into overdrive. Is probably wearing that all-knowing, sly grin she always does when you try to be coy and evasive. âWhat happened to the last container I sent?â
âAh, you know Kaori loves those. They barely lasted an hour after I told her what was in there.â
She hums an acknowledgement. Sounds like she takes a sip of tea. âI remember someone else being quite fond of those cookies, too.â
âWell, they are the most popular cookies in the country, so.â
After haranguing you into admitting theyâre for Seungcheol and not your roommate, your mother promises to send them quickly. A few days at most, which buys you enough time to figure out how youâre going to approach the man in question.
The vlogs have turned your entire world upside-down. Answered questions you hadnât even known you had. Took all that anger and resentment youâd been holding onto and set it free, and now youâre just left with⊠a void. Want to mend things, and it makes you wonder if such a thing is even possible, if itâs too late, but you donât let those thoughts get very far.
Instead, you let them spur you into action. Have you sitting in front of your laptop at your desk, office hours long since over, silence creeping in the more the department empties. The thrum of the airconditioning and the tick-tick-tick of the clock are all the only company you have.
You worry if itâll show on camera, how out of sorts you feel: sweating from the nerves, dabbing at your hairline; cheeks warm to the touch. But you suck in a breath anyway, steel yourself. Look at your webcam and the daunting red circleâŠ
And start recording.
He hadnât gotten it at first. Not really.
Thereâd been a container of yakgwa outside his door with his USB drive taped to the top of it. No noteânot that he needed one to know who it was from, but he wasnât sure what it was. A goodbye? A please fuck off forever and never contact me again?
Heâd just taken them inside. Ate too many of the cookies while feeling sorry for himself. Maybe had a glass or two of wine to compound the issue, and never, ever considered contacting you. Didnât think he could bear it if you never wanted to see him again, but he justâŠ
Well, he was drunk and alone and he missed you, and heâd rewatched all those videos he recorded a million times before when he was like this, so what was a million and one?
Itâd been the same as every time before: he smiled at the happy parts, cried at all his old wounds. Wanted to reach through the screen and strangle his past self for including that part about the blind date, because he never wanted to date anyone who wasnât you, why would he say that, felt mortified at the thought of you watching thatâ
And then there it was.
All the way at the bottom. A new video. One that hadnât been recorded by himâ
Hi, Cheol, you say, and thatâs all it takes to reduce him to a sobbing, yearning mess. Iâm not sure what to say here. I donât really record muchâsometimes for lectures when the professors are too busy, but never anything personal like this, but I watched every single one you made for me and I thought I should return the favor.
I wanted to tell you everything Iâve been up to since you left, but it hasnât been much. I got my degree. Tutored a lot in undergradâthe same thing Iâm tutoring you in now, actually. I was good at it and it felt good to have something that was mine, you know? I almost moved for grad school. Thought for a while I was going to wind up in New York, but then my parents divorced and it felt like too much, too scary, so I stayed. Kaori also stayed, so we got an apartment together. Itâs not much, definitely not as nice as your place, but itâs good enough.
I donât think I ever told you, but she was seeing a guy for a bit and he was⊠obsessed with you, to say the least. Thought you were the coolest person in the world. They arenât seeing each other anymore. Ended pretty badly, butâspeaking of which, maybe steer clear of Student Services for a while, too.
Sometimes it felt like failure that I wound up staying here. That I had scholarships from all these far-away, prestigious places and didnât take advantage of them. That I gave into my fear. And now⊠I donât know. Maybe thereâs a reason I stayed behind. Maybe thereâs a reason you ended up back here, too.
Whatever happensâI donât want you to think I still blame you. Kaori says we do the best we can with what weâve got at the time, and I understand now thatâs what you did. Even though it hurt me, you were trying to protect me. I get it now. And Iâm sorry you had to go through all of that alone. I canât imagine how hard it mustâve been to go to all these places you didnât know. To have to deal with your injury, the loss of a dream.
You said in one of your videos that you just want me to be happy, and thatâs all I want for you, too, whatever that looks like.
Hereâs my address if you ever want to come by to talk.
I love you, too.
âand then heâd been up and out the door, feeling stone cold sober, running to the front of his building to wait for his ride.
Felt like the drive took hours. Mustâve hit every red light between his apartment and yours. Took the steps two at a time just to get to your door faster.
Thereâs a man already standing outside your door when he gets there. One that looks shocked to see him, stars in his eyes, and when Seungcheol says, âOh, you must be Kaoriâs ex,â he looks more like he wants the earth to swallow him whole. Embarrassed in front of his idol.
He knocks on your door and gets no response. Knocks again, harder this time, and he has to try really hard to stifle his laughter when your voice yells from the inside, âFuck off, Kenji, I already told you sheâs not here!â
âItâs me,â Seungcheol yells back.
Thereâs quiet again. Just enough time for it to feel like his heart is going to beat right out of his chest and follow Kaoriâs ex down the hall.
Then youâre yanking the door openâslowly, so slowly, like youâre scared itâs not actually him. Your eyes are brimming with tears when they meet his own, and he doesnât let himself think, just goes on instinct, when he grabs for you, hands on your cheeks, and presses his lips to yours.
Somehow you taste the same.
Somehow you taste like redemption.
You taste like home.
Seungcheol kisses you until the tears slow. Kisses you until the universe realigns, until he could map your mouth in the dark. Kisses you until all youâre all he knows again.
When he pulls away, youâre gripping at his sweatshirt, donât want to let him go. He presses his forehead to yours, offers up a million more apologies, starts talking nonsense. Says heâs going to drop microeconomics, what the hell does he know, he barely has a passing grade anyway, what does it matter, heâs such an idiotâ
And then you say, âYou came back,â and nothing else matters.
âI always will.â
(Later on, as youâre trying to steady your breathing, slick with sweat, your thigh thrown over Seungcheolâs hip as he stares down at you, dopey smile on his face, you say, âChoi Seungcheol, donât you dare drop that class. I have worked my ass off to get you to barely-passing.â)
if youâve made it this far thank you so much for reading! i am still very new at writing for seventeen, so i hope this was acceptable. i'm now going to throw myself into the warped tour vernon fic and will hopefully not go another 7+ months without posting anything. đ
i would love to hear your thoughts! <3
#seungcheol x reader#scoups x reader#seungcheol angst#seungcheol au#scoups angst#seungcheol imagines#scoups imagines#seventeen fanfic#seventeen imagines#seventeen x reader#jewel writes
3K notes
·
View notes
Text
â đ đđđđđ đđđđđ đđđ đđđ đ
đđđđđđ đ
đđđđ !! â
â PROF. GETO IS SO HOT AND NOW HEâS YOUR THESIS ADVISOR !! â
⧠pairing: professor!geto x f!reader (yuta x f!reader) (part six of the prof geto series)
⧠summary: just when you had moved on, suguru is back in your life as your thesis advisor, and what choice do you have but to deal -- deal with lingering feelings from your breakup, but also yuta's. and through this, you both find out what you all owe to each other.
⧠warnings: 18+, nsfw, smut , fluff, but also angst depictions of student/teacher relationship (only ok in fiction not irl!!!), reader is a grad student, but age is vague, post breakup, dealing with exes, insecurity, semi-exhibitionism, desk sex, fingering (f! receiving), handjob (m! receiving), oral (f! + m! receiving), sex (p in v), creampie, multiple orgasms, amateur's take on moral philsophy and ethics, fanart by @ / kyrraen (pls go follow them, they are so talented)
⧠w/c: 25,305 | part one | part two | part three | part four | part five
Suguru never had believed in fate before â before he met you.Â
And now it seemed fate had its own plans for the both of you â pulling you together, even when he had tried his best to push the two of you apart. Try he had, and in the end, you both ended up back where you had started â seated across from each other with a pile of papers littered with red pen.Â
Except now he himself had found himself littered with you â your tie pin you had given him, the way his fingers wanted to smooth your brow with a kiss as it furrowed while you flipped through your proposal, and how his heart felt whole from the moment you walked in the room. And he knew he would be littered with your marks all his life, more permanent than ink â and he would never be able rid himself of them.Â
Or of you.Â
When Yaga had come to him with the news, it was already too much to handle. He was being re-assigned to Tokyo to handle duties for both schools for a time â until someone stepped up to handle Kyoto. Yaga didnât trust anyone else â and since Suguru had worked at Tokyo longer, it made sense to have him go back.Â
But then the question of you â the reminder came on the form of your email during their meeting â and you came into his world again the same way you did before â an email for a meeting. But it wasnât for him.Â
Not yet at least.Â
It was hard to know what to do, or what you would want. Yaga could have you re-assigned, but the thesis you were working on was in Suguruâs specialty and he knew half the reason you had asked Yaga was to have a department head listed on your thesis. And to rob you of that wasnât a choice he wanted to make for you.Â
Heâs done enough of that to you. And he had done it for your future â and he would do this for your future, if you wanted him to.Â
Youâre speechless when he breaks the news to you â as he expected you would be. But his surprise comes when you reply â he expected anger, frustration, a straight out refusal to work with him â but he did not get any of those â he only got quiet acceptance.Â
âFine, should we stick to the same schedule that Yaga and I agreed to?â And Suguru takes a minute, leaning back in his chair, âwhat?âÂ
âI justâŠI didnât expect you to accept so readily,â he replies softly, choosing his words carefully, âin my email, I said you could take time to think about it or we could procure a different advisorââÂ
âProfessor,â the word sticks in his chest like a right dagger that barely misses his heart, âout of everyone who works in this department I know you are the only one who is capable of pushing me to be my best, even when I donât ask for it,â you add under your breath, âespecially when I donât ask for it,âÂ
A hollow chuckle is stuck in his throat, âIf youâre sure, itâs your choice,â and heâs looking for a few notes and edits he had written out for you for the schedule you sent along previously.Â
âIt is my choice,â you echo, your eyes meet his, as he looks up from the papers strewn about the desk, âand I choose this,â and he knows all too well what you mean by your deliberate choice of wordsâ and he did love you for your cutting tongue.Â
Even when it was used against him.Â
âIf you do, then can you choose to come to my old office?â And youâre blinking, brow furrowing â and his cheeks burn, âI left your schedule there â I had a few notes regarding my own schedule,âÂ
You raise an eyebrow, a flicker of a smart remark on the tip of your tongue that you seemingly swallow, as you gather the proposal into your bag, âletâs go,â
The walk over is in relative silence, the campus mostly quiet with the impending end of the semester at bay â as he forces his gaze forward, but that doesnât stop his traitorous eyes from sneaking glances all the same. Why was it that he was a lighthouse and his eyes were spotlights only made to find your ship on the dark waves of the sea.Â
And you stop in your tracks, a glance at your face doesnât give him the answer â but another face does.Â
âYuta?â And heâs holding your lunch bag â the same one you insisted on taking with you, refusing to spend more money on the overpriced lunch on campus. And the realization hits him all at once, and heâs suddenly toppling headfirst into the waves.Â
âYou forgot your lunch,â Yuta offers an awkward smile â and Suguruâs eyes find your face again, right before he goes under â the same soft look you gave him.Â
Used to give him.Â
And he lets the water overtake him.Â
~~~
âYou forgot your lunch,â
And you never thought a rushed morning would lead to the most awkward moment of your life. Yuta glances between you and Suguru, as you step forward to take your lunch from his hand, your fingers intertwining with his, as if to ground yourself.Â
âYuta, this is Professor Geto, he taught one of the classes I took and heâs taking over as my thesis advisor,â and youâre only lucky Suguru is able to tuck away emotions so easily, a polite smile on his lips as he offers his hand to Yuta, âthis is Yuta, my boyfriend,âÂ
You canât meet Suguruâs gaze as you say it â but you wonder what you would find â hurt, anger, or nothing at all? And you couldnât figure out which would hurt the most.Â
âItâs nice to meet you,â Suguru says, before shaking his hand, and Yuta nods.Â
âLikewise,â and Suguru turns to you, hands slipping into his pockets, while yours remained laced with Yutaâs â but how long ago would it had been intertwined in his? âOn second thought, Iâll email you my edits to your thesis schedule, Iâll leave you both to the rest of your day,â he gives a stiff smile, before heading on his way.Â
And he knew this was a future of his own making â the consequences of his own actions.Â
He gives a bitter chuckle. Consequentialism â the morality is centered around creating the right consequences â and wasnât it right? Right for you to be happy with someone your age? Right to be with someone who you can hold their hand and be with? Right to be with someone who can give you everything and anything you want?Â
âI understand the intention of consequentialism, but it just feels so pointless,â you had said while the two of you sat watching TV on the couch, your legs thrown over his lap, the comfortable warmth of your head resting on his shoulder.Â
âThatâs not where I thought your mind was,â Suguru had chuckled, pressing a kiss to your forehead, but still he indulged, âthe point is to get as much good as possible out of a decision correct? The most happiness?âÂ
Your brow remained furrowed, âBut the problem is the cost of it â it can come at the cost of your own happiness if itâs creating the right consequences,âÂ
âThatâs more utilitarianismââ and you shrug.Â
âI understand itâs more complicated, but I donât see the value in making decisions like that â doesnât it defeat the purpose because youâre doing it for the outcome â without considering your feelings or the others? Youâre nothing more than a happiness pump,âÂ
And as he sneaks a glance back, watching you and Yuta stand there still, fingers still intertwined, his fingers squeeze the handle of his bag, is that why it feels so wrong?Â
He arrived back at his office, fingers turning the knob and finding an empty tomb â the walls stripped down to the bare, a thick layer of dust that clung to the surfaces, the couch he had in the corner of the room likely relocated to another office â that he thought he had finally left behind. But here he was again â right back where he started.Â
He dragged his finger through the dust on his desk. Was he nothing more than a happiness pump? Giving himself pain for the sake of othersâ happiness â and was the outcome worth it? But heâs swallowing down his pain â a bitter consequence he had to take â because he knew â he would take any pain, if it meant you were happy.Â
And you were.Â
Right?Â
~~~
Yuta knew â he did even before he had started to date you. Or rather, he had suspected. But now he knew. Â
The first time he saw the two of you bump into each other, he knew because of the way Geto looked at you â and even the way you looked at him â the hurt flickering in your gaze, even when you refused to look at him.Â
Professor Geto has been much more than a professor to you â he was your boyfriend, the same one Yuta had envied for so many months. Only for him to be back in your life again. And he felt like he was right back to where he had started in your life again â a friend.Â
And there wasnât a thing wrong with being your friend â but now that he was more than one, he knew he only wanted even more of you â and to give more of himself. If you would let him.Â
But when your fingers curled around his, âboyfriendâ slipping from your lips, assuaged his anxiety for a moment, but as he watched your eyes find the back of Getoâs head after he left, it all came back.Â
Your fingers squeeze his, âThank you for bringing my lunch, Yu,â and it brings him back to the moment, and your face is so readable in this moment â as if to make up for the times he couldnât make sense of you â searching for an indication that he knew, an implication of his emotions, a question unspoken to ask if he knew.Â
And he did.Â
âOf course, baby,â he presses a kiss to your forehead, and he wants to tell you he does, wants to ask you why you hid it, why you felt you couldnât be honest, and why you look like youâre still as heartbroken as the day he ran into you outside this building, âI have to go, but Iâll see you later,â but he doesnât ask.Â
âYutaââ but heâs only pressing a sweet kiss to your lips, fingers cupping his cheek.Â
âI love you,â and your lips curl into a small smile.Â
âI love you too,â and it was enough, he thought, as his fingers parted from yours, and he turned to leave.Â
It was enough, for now. Â
~~~
How do you tell someone something they already know? You snuck glances at your own boyfriend after dinner, as the two of you settled in to watch something to unwind. The day had gone by as expected, but the crawling anxiety only grew as more time passed, the words wanting nothing more than to leave your mouth.Â
Why was it you when you had so much to say you couldnât say it? And now when you had to explain, no words could leave your lips?Â
God, how the fuck did you catch yourself in this mess? Your ex as your thesis advisor â was this karma for being unethical? A cruel consequence of the choices you made? Maybe fate? No, it wasnât fate. Things were better without Suguru in your life, simpler and easier. And you were happy â but now this, this just had the potential to ruin everything.Â
But only if you let it.Â
And the longer you went without discussing this, the more damage it would be. It was a secret you had chosen to keep â you didnât think it was pertinent, especially with Suguru in Kyoto. It was a detail you could spare, at least until after you graduated,Â
But now it couldnât wait.Â
It was a piano hanging by a string thatâs already snapped and it was on its last fibers, swinging back and forth, waiting to see whether you would push Yuta and yourself out of the way â or whether one or both of you would get crushed in the process.Â
The walk back to your apartment is an exercise in coping mechanisms to prevent panic or anxiety from settling fully into your skin, holding the string together with your arms seemingly, ready for it to tear you apart.Â
But it doesnât.Â
âI have to talk to you,â you say once you and Yuta are sitting on the couch, one leg tucked under the other to prevent you from shaking it, or running away for that matter, âitâs nothing bad â well, I mean itâs notââ you cut yourself off, shaking your head, âjust know I love you, and that hasnât changedââÂ
And his lips find yours, cutting off your frantic thoughts with a sweet kiss that only leaves you wanting more, but also leaves you with more questions than answers.Â
He pulls away, a small smile on his lips, âBreath â and you sigh, taking a breath, âand I love you too,â your fingers interlace with his, âwhat is it?âÂ
But you donât even know where to begin, except at the point, âYou know the ex that broke my heart before we dated?â And heâs nodding, âProfessor Geto isââÂ
âIs your ex,â he finishes, and you knew he had figured out, but you hadnât expected it to come out so matter-of-factly, âI had a feeling and this morning confirmed it,âÂ
âIâm sorry,â you shake your head, âafter he moved, I never thought he would move back, much less become my thesis advisor,â you bury your face in your hands, âand I donât want you to think I was hiding it. Itâs just with the relationship being taboo, I didnât thinkââÂ
âYou were trying to protect yourself and your ex, itâs understandable,â he squeezes your hand, âyou couldnât have expected this to happen,âÂ
And youâre lifting your gaze to his, âHow are you so calm? How are you soâŠokay?âÂ
He gives a sigh, âitâs hard, Iâm trying to stay rational for you â for us,â you lean against him, âwhat are you going to do? About your thesis?âÂ
âI think Iâll have to take Suguru as my advisor. I donât have much of a choice,â you bite your lip, âI could take another, but no other professor has the same specialization as Yaga, except Geto, and I know heâll give me good feedback,âÂ
âBut?â You rest your head in your hand.Â
âBut having to spend that much time with my ex? Having to work on something so important to my career with him? Having to put you through that?â you feel more lost than when you began this conversation, âI donât know what to do. I already agreed to it, but I think itâs only sinking in,â and you turn to him, âand then thereâs you,âÂ
âWhat about me?â and you shake your head.Â
âHow can I put you through watching me spending hours with my ex over the next semester?â And Yuta shakes your head.Â
âA decision important to your future shouldnât just be based on me, it should be about you,â and you purse your lips â another reason why Yuta was so sweet, as you lean against him, burying your face in the crook of his neck.Â
âI donât deserve you,â he chuckles, running his fingers through your hair, âIâll keep him as my advisor for now, but if you have a problem, please talk to me okay?â You lean back to look at him, âplease?âÂ
âOf course,â and his lips find yours in a sweet kiss, âand you always deserve me â because I chose you.â You kissed him, his arms curling around you, as you leaned into his touch â the one place that always felt safe.Â
And you didnât know that he just hoped â youâd choose him too.Â
~~~
Fuck. How was it you found yourself before Professor Getoâs door yet again?Â
Winter break had flown by and now you found yourself back in the office you thought you had left behind not so long ago. Even if it felt like forever. You had spent your time split between working on your thesis, with the edits to your outline that Suguru had provided you, and with Yuta â who was more endlessly understanding than you could have hoped to imagine. And even today, as you headed off to meet Suguru in his office, he had nothing but soothing words for your nerves, sweet kisses, and a promise for a good meal when you got home.Â
You hovered before the door of his office â no matter what had happened throughout these months, why did it always feel as if you always ended up here? Pulled against your will into a rotation around him â one that would have you stuck into a constant push and pull â and just when you had let go of his grip, you were pulled back in. And as your fist hovered next to the door, bracing to knock, you werenât sure if you were ready to fall back in.Â
But what you didnât know as you stood before the door was that the man behind it was more anxious about this meeting than you were.Â
~~~
âYouâre early,â Suguru glances up from his paperwork, his top of his pen pressed to the seam of his lips, âfor once,âÂ
Suguru himself had nearly been late this morning â ever the hypocrite, he supposed. He could barely sleep the night before, spent catching up on the work piled up for two department heads while the Kyoto campus makes potential temporary candidates jump through hoops. And then there was the other reason, his meeting with you â and all the complicated feelings he didnât wish to entangle himself in. And yet he always fell deeper into your web, as if he didnât willingly ensnare himself to begin with.Â
He didnât even know Yaga was sick, but he had seen the change in him. The subtle differences in his demeanor, the bags around his eyes, and the creeping slowness that came with illness. But it still hit like a gut punch to hear it from his mouth, and for him to ask to take over duties for him was a double edged blade of honor and complication.Â
Yaga had given him the option to turn it down: to keep managing everything from Kyoto â but he accepted anyway â accepted because he knew that youâd be out of a thesis advisor. And he would be left unable to help from Kyoto with the in person role an advisor played.Â
And so he was here.Â
When he finally had gotten to lay down, eyes fixed on the familiar ceiling fan again â as he had managed to get his old apartment back by some miracle â and he hates how this place is a husk of itself without you here. But even with you here before him, his eyes snuck at glance at you, it somehow was worse being with you â when he was nothing to you. He could bear to not be your lover, but he couldnât bear the weight of your hatred, or worse, your indifference.Â
You cross your arms, your laptop bag draped on your shoulder, âYouâll never let that go until one of us is dead will you?âÂ
âThatâs assuming we wouldnât haunt the other,â he replies without missing a beat, as you take a seat across from him, eyes taking in his office. The same set up from before, if not a little less ostentatious and obnoxious â a few missing pictures and awards tucked away, the missing luxury sofa, and the lack of leather bound books lining shelves, instead minimally decorated with a few select titles â including What Do We Owe Each Other, prominently displayed.Â
âI have better things to do than haunt you,â you scoff, pulling out your laptop from your bag, âdid you forget to finish unpacking?â And he doesnât offer even a look up at your remark.Â
âNo, just decided to take a certain personâs advice and try to take a less pretentious approach to my office,â his lips curled in that damnable wry smile of his, âplus not everything has been sent back from Kyoto yet,â and he leans forward, plucking your revised thesis outline from the neat piles lined up on his desk, âbut my office decor isnât why weâre here,â he flips through his notes on your draft, âthe outline is in good shape, have you started on your draft?âÂ
You pull a stapled stack out to slide to him, âI have fleshed out some of my main points and I wanted your thoughts before I dove further,â and he takes it before scanning through it, silent as he peruses the contents.Â
His eyes flit up, âYou didnât have to wait for my approvalââÂ
âI know, but I value your opinion,â you grumble, eyes averted as you admit it, a graze of your teeth against the bottom of your lip. It draws a small smile from him, hidden away behind his closed fist pressed to his lips, âas my advisor,â you add, and he nods.Â
The meeting finished up with much else, as you slide your laptop and things back into your bag. And for the first time your eyes meet his.Â
âHave you been sleeping okay?â and heâs blinking a moment, as you continue, âyou look tired. You should sleep more instead of working,â
He furrows his brow, âI am sleeââÂ
âYou have bags under your eyes, Professor,â you roll your eyes, âlisten or donât, but I rather my thesis isnât re-assigned last minute because you ran yourself into the ground,â you say before turning to leave.Â
âI expect your next draft by the beginning of the next week,â and you pause, the click of the knob as you pull the door open.Â
âIâll have it to you by the end of the week.â And youâre gone, door shutting behind you, and he leans back in his chair, a smile that he canât quite hide on his lips.Â
Maybe he wasnât quite nothing to you after all.Â
~~~
âIâm home, baby,â you say, as you walk in, the burden of the day still in the process of sliding off your back as you passed through the threshold of your apartment. You stripped yourself of your cost and your shoes, hanging your bag up, âYu?âÂ
You checked your phone with no text or call from him â he said he would be at your place, and thatâs when you spot a familiar mop of black hair from the couch. Your lips curl as you round the couch, only to find him fast asleep, his work spread out around him. His first day back seemed as stressful as yours, and yet he hadnât complained.Â
His bags were dark â a product of a bad nightâs sleep â a running trend for today seemingly. You ran your fingers through his hair gently, knowing he wouldnât wake simply by that, but you heard the quiet mumble of words you couldnât catch. You glanced at the kitchen and found dinner prepped but not made. You smile softly, as you take the throw blanket and gently spread it over him, before pressing a soft kiss to his forehead, and then rising to your feet.Â
Youâre almost done cooking curry when Yuta stirs, the smell of the stewing beef and spices waking him, as he lifts his head, back of his hand rubbing his eye, while he glances at you with the other.Â
âHey sleeping beauty,â your lips curl, doing a bad job of stifling your chuckle at the sight of his black hair askew, âdinner is almost ready,âÂ
âDinner? When did you getââ and he picks up his phone to check the time, a small groan stuck in his throat, âwhy didnât you wake me when you got home?âÂ
âI would have,â you wipe off your hands, as you make your way to the living room, as Yuta swings his legs off the couch, scrubbing a hand down his face, âbut youâre so cute when youâre sleeping,â and his cheeks flush an ever so subtle pink â even after this time together, it was so easy to fluster him, âplus, it looked like you needed it,âÂ
Your hand brushes his cheek, and heâs leaning into your touch, your other hand running fingers through his hair to straighten it out, âI did,â he mumbles, âit was a long day,âÂ
âWant to talk about it over some rice and curry?â and he bites his lip, before he leans in to press a sweet kiss to you, delighting in the desperate look he gives you when you drag your tongue teasingly against the seam of his lips only to pull away, âdonât pout,â you drag your thumb down his lips, âIâll kiss you plenty after dinner,âÂ
âPromise?â And you drag him to his feet and heâs walking to the bathroom as youâre opening cabinets to take plates out, only for his arms to wrap around your middle, pressing his face into the crook of your neck.Â
You chuckle, biting back the shiver that runs up your spine at the warmth of his touch, âwhatâs that for?âÂ
âThank you,â he murmurs, meeting your gaze with umbra eyes that has you lost in the only inky black sky you craved.Â
âOf course, Yu,â you murmur before his lips find yours again, and you just wished you could live in this moment, as he parted from your lips only to press another kiss to your cheek, but you supposed you couldâÂ
âFor now at least.Â
âSheâs what?â Maki stares at Yuta as he rubs the back of his head, her words nearly ringing out in the empty conference room, âsheâs spending a bunch of time with her ex and youâre ok with it?âÂ
Yuta has made a mistake â the mistake of being twenty minutes early to this student government meeting only to find Maki here alone, scrolling on her phone. Her eyes flitting up only for her to tilt her head and bark:Â
âOi, what is it now?â And Yuta didnât know if he liked being so seen by her.Â
Especially now that he was being judged for his decisions â or rather, raked over the coals for them.Â
Yuta purses his lips, âIâm not exactly okay with it, but I donât know what to do. She has to work on her project with him â I guess, how could I object?â And how could he? Your omission made sense, you were only trying to protect your reputationâ and your exâs by extension. But it didnât make it sting any less.Â
âDoesnât she have another choice? Couldnât she work with someone else?â Maki crosses her arms, eyes narrowed, as if she can detect the holes in his lies by pure reflex, âarenât you worried sheâll go back to him?â And voices every worry almost if sheâs ripped it from his mind itself.
âI am, she does have other choices, but I couldnât be the one to make her choices for herââÂ
âBut you couldnât tell her how you felt about it?â Maki shakes her head, pinching the bridge of her nose as if this conversation is giving her a headache â or more likely, heâs giving her a headache, âhow do you feel?âÂ
Yuta chews his lip, leaning on his arm on the table, âI donât know, I understand itâs just a project â itâs something for her future â I donât want to make things more complicated for us,â he mumbles.Â
âYou mean for herâand for your relationship,â Maki crosses her arms, tilting her head, âYuta, if you canât be honest with her, whatâs the point of this relationship?â And people start to file into the room for the meeting, so she hisses in a whisper, âyou need to figure out what you want â and how to tell her how youâre feeling because itâs going to eat you alive or drive her into her exâs arms â either way, you wonât be in this relationship,âÂ
And on that bleak note, she gets to her feet to corral everyone into their seats, leaving him to simmer in her words. His phone lighting up nearly on cue with a text from youâÂ
Canât make the meeting this week, babe â Geto rescheduled my meeting with him this week for now, so Iâm headed thereÂ
A hint of irritation pricks at him â it had to be today, during the only time that they had together at school?Â
Another message comes through.Â
Iâll see you at your place after the meeting - love you đ
He locks his phone, tucking it away in his pocket â as Maki starts the meeting.Â
It was fine â he would see you at home. It didnât matter â Geto had only these meetings, Yuta had much more of you. It was fine.Â
He forced his gaze forward, a gnawing dread in his stomach. Right?Â
âWhat do you mean it was expected?âÂ
You were starting to remember the reason why you hated this man so vehemently when you first met him. His nearly smug expression made you want to leap across the desk and strangle him â though you knew the consequences of that action wouldnât turn out well for you â nor the proximity for that matter, âwhat I wroteââÂ
âIs what others have written in papers time and time again,â he cuts you off, and you slump back in your chair, as you flip through the red inked comments he had so thoughtfully ripped apart your first few pages â the precise cuts and slashes enough for red ink to look like blood, âyour thesis needs to be a unique takeââÂ
âAnd now it isnât unique enough?â you grumble, crossing your arms, as your cheeks burn, âsoon youâll be saying Iâm rambling again,âÂ
âNo, I was able to rid you of that habit a while ago,â you glare at him, a smile pulling at the corner of his lips, âI would be concerned if you started to regress,âÂ
âWell, at least it would only be academically,â the words spit like venom from your mouth without a thought, but the hurt that flickers across his face is one that seemingly has too much thought behind it, âsorry, that was inappropriate,âÂ
âItâs fine,â the hurt is gone from his expression, as unreadable as it always was, âto get back to our discussion, I know you want this paper to be published by journals, and in order to do that, you need to have a perspective that hasnât been explored beforeâat least not fully. Your outline reflects that, but your paper is regurgitating ideas that youâve read,â heâs handing you a list of papers and books, with some noted passages, âread some of these materials, it might help give you some ideas to rework your paper,â and then he adds, âand you knew Iâd say this,âÂ
You knit your brow together, âWhat?âÂ
He leans against his arm propped against the top of his desk, âWhy else would you want me to see if you were going in the right direction? You always have an idea what you want to write, of where you want your paper to go â and you never wanted my greenlight for a long time now,âÂ
You hate how he can still see right through you â you hate how easily he can pinpoint your problem without you uttering a helpful word. Even before, it always felt as if he was the only one who saw you, without you having to explain a single thing.Â
âYouâre right,â and he hated how right he was, âI wasnât sure where I was going,â this thesis had been weighing on your mind day and night, pricking at your nerves each time you stared at the blinking cursor of the document, âI still donât,âÂ
Suguru murmurs your name softly, his gaze as gentle as it always has been for you, a part of you hoped â only for you, âAs Iâve always said, the only reason why I push you is because I know you can do more. This thesis would be outstanding for many scholars, but I know you can do more,â he tilts his head, small smile on his lips, âand I know you still can,âÂ
âWhat if I canât?â The question slips out before you can even think it, and he raises an eyebrow.Â
âThere is no âwhat if,â I know you can do it,â and you bite your lip, âi donât have any doubts,âÂ
âNot even one?â You reply, an eyebrow quirked.Â
âNot when it comes to you,â and he said just what you wanted to hear, but you hated it all the more â because how did he know you so well? How did he know you so well and yet not know to talk to you before breaking your heart?Â
But it didnât matter now. And you couldnât trudge up these feelings now, or maybe ever.Â
âIâll read these materials and rework it,â and you begin to collect your things all the while, getting to your feet.Â
âGood,â and you catch sight of his smile in the reflection of your phone, âitâs what you owe yourself.âÂ
And your eyes meet his for a moment, so why couldnât he give you what he owed you before?Â
âThank you, Professor.âÂ
âIâm back,â you call out in Yutaâs apartment, tucking your keys away into your bag, as you slip your shoes off and shrugging off your jacket, but you hear nothing in response, âYuta?â But not a sound â no quiet voices of the TV, the clatter of dishes and utensils in the kitchen, and no sign of him in the bedroom either.Â
You check your phone, as you sit on the edge of the bed, creaking under your weight, and you see his text: sorry baby, Maki took the group out for dinner after, youâre free to join us. And the address is sent underneath.Â
But the text was well over twenty minutes ago, and it would take you longer to get there â which meant dinner would nearly be over. You laid back on his bed on your side, typing a reply.Â
Sorry Yu, just saw this :(. Iâll come next time. Iâll make something up fast and probably lie down. Iâll see you at home.Â
You curl up on the bed, placing your phone down with a sigh, eyes fluttering shut. Your nose turned into his sheets, Yutaâs scent flooding your senses, and you could nearly feel his arms around you. Almost.Â
God, you missed him â especially you two just kept missing each other like this â and it made it all the more important you stayed awake.Â
Your eyes flutter open, the sweet siren of sleep growing all the more tempting, a late lunch sitting like stones in your stomach and the need for the sandmanâs relief growing headier.Â
And before you knew it, your legs were tucked under the comforter and your eyes succumbed to their own weight.Â
Your soft breaths filled the silence of the apartment, and even as Yuta came in an hour or so later, only to find you sprawled out messily in his bed, phone still in your hand, did he chuckle. His hands are gentle as he guides you into a normal position for sleep that wouldnât fuck over your back, putting your phone on charge, and pressing a kiss to your forehead.Â
And as he leaves the room to shower, not hearing the quiet murmur of his name leaving your lips.Â
âYou have to try a little,â youâre nearly waving your ice cream cone in front of Yutaâs face, soft serve dripping onto the pavement, and the soft pink swirl threatening to topple over in front of your eyes, but the risk of losing your beloved ice cream was not as important as advocating for it, âcâmon itâs so goodââÂ
âBaby, the ice cream is supposed to be your treat for all the progress youâve made on your thesis, not a taste test, and I have my own flavorââ but as the ice cream hovers in front of his face, Yuta tastes it â the subtle sakura flavor lingering on his tongue, âitâs good,â he concedes, âbut not as good as my matcha,âÂ
It had been a lot to tear you away from your work â it had been weeks in the making of trying to get you to take a break that wasnât you falling asleep on the couch with your laptop and notes strewn about or a mindless TV break. And the times you both were supposed to have together often ended with one of you being busy or falling asleep. He barely remembered the last time the two of you had spent together that didnât involve takeout or the couch.Â
You pout, âSakura is so much better,â you grumble, licking at your ice cream, trying to stem the excess melting off the sides of your waffle cone, and he chuckles, as a little of your ice cream sticks to your nose.Â
âMore for you then right?â heâs pulling a tissue out to wipe your nose and lips before kissing them, âMm, itâs sweeter on your lips,â and he knows your cheeks are burning as you avert your eyes, biting your lip.
âYouâre the worst,â and he laughs, as he wraps his arm around your middle, âbut Iâll say youâre right about today. This date was definitely needed,â you lean into his touch, still working on your ice cream, âIâm sorry Iâve been so busy,âÂ
âYou donât have to apologize, itâs not just you thatâs busyââÂ
âI know, but itâs mostly been me,â your eyes find his, and he wavers under your glance, âI know we havenât had a lot of time together, and I promise, itâs only going to last a little longer, once Iâm done with my thesis Iâm all yours,âÂ
And itâs hard for him to believe that â but he tries, because he knows you are.Â
âI know,â he presses a kiss to your forehead, âIâm just glad we got to do this today, I just feel like we keep missing each other, and it justâŠitâs been bothering me,âÂ
And you kiss his jaw, before softly smiling, âYouâre not alone,â and his lips find yours again, and again, ice cream starting to run down his fingers and palm, but he could care less about anything else but you at this moment, âYouâre gonna make me drop my ice cream,âÂ
âIâll buy you another,â and you laugh, kissing him this time, and he melts just like the ice cream into your grasp, your arms wrapped around him tight, ânow whoâs making our ice cream melt?âÂ
âYou said youâd buy me another anyway,â you nuzzle his neck, âplus I have to leave space to eat you up later,â and you giggle as his cheeks burn, âyou blush so easily still, thought you would be used to my teasing by now,âÂ
âDonât think Iâll ever get used to it, still feels like a dream,â you pinch his cheek in reply, a smirk on your lips, as you kiss the skin that you pinched.Â
âNow, itâs not a dream, is it?â And right as your lips were about to meet his againâ
RING. RING. RING.Â
Your brow furrows as you ignore it at first, before a sigh catches in your throat, âhold onââ you check your messages, your brow furrowing, âfuck,â you swear under your breath.Â
âWhatâs wrong?â And youâre tossing your ice cream in a nearby trash can, wiping your hand with one of the tissues the ice cream place had handed you, before texting back.Â
âGeto wants to meet today about my thesis. Apparently some departmental meetings got pushed around, and today is the only day he can meet in personââÂ
âDo you have toââ and youâre shaking your head in exasperation, burying your face in your hands.Â
âI have no choice. Itâs the only time until a week and half from now, and I canât wait to get this feedback, otherwise it will throw off my entire scheduleââÂ
âBut this is the only time we can meet,â he cuts you off, voice catching on the words, as his tongue is caught between holding it and wagging it, âI miss you, baby, we havenât seen each other in weeks because of our schedules, because of your thesisââ because of him, âwhen will our relationship take priority? When will I be important enough to matter?âÂ
âYuta,â your voice breaks, âof course you matter to meââ and your phone vibrates again, cutting you off, and he takes a beat and a breath. He swallows thickly, this wasnât the right time for this.Â
But when would it be?Â
âGo,â he says, and your eyebrows knit together, lips parting to refuse, âIâm okay, really. Weâll talk when you get home,â but heâs stepping towards you, as he presses a kiss to your forehead, âpromise, weâre ok. Just go. Iâll call you.âÂ
âYou sure?â He wasnât. He wasnât sure if he should let you go or stand his ground â but, his fingers cupped your cheek, and kissed your lips â but he was sure that he loved you.Â
âIâm sure,â and he wanted what was best for you â and he watches you leave after you say your farewells â even if it wasnât best for him.Â
You shouldnât have agreed to this.Â
Agreed to take this meeting over your date. Agreed to meet in the lecture hall instead of his office. Agreed to have him as your thesis advisor. Agreed to even take a course with him to begin with. You were several steps too close to regret being born, but your real mistake was ever pursuing this man to begin with.Â
That was your mistake â and now you are reaping what you sow.Â
Literally.Â
âYour lecture was compelling â I have so much to learn from you,â you stood outside his lecture hall as students filed out quicker than usual, without the typical quorum that formed after every one of his classes â only to find the reason that a single person commanded his attention, âI didnât realize how wonderfully interesting philosophy could be as a topic,â her voice already grates on your ears, the elongated syllables of her words nearly enough for you to roll your eyes into the back of your head so far that you were they would get stuck.Â
âItâs a fine line between interesting and dry, Iâm glad I could walk it for you, Mei Mei,â and you could hear the smile in his tone, the saccharine sweetness enough for you to choke on and die of excess sugar, but unfortunately you donât, so you have to hear the rest of this conversation.Â
âIâm so glad I took Satoruâs advice to see your lecture, it was definitely eye opening,â and you furrow your brow, âheâs been asking me about you â he told me if I stopped by to have you call him,âÂ
You purse your lips â Satoru?Â
A sigh in his voice as he speaks âHe sent a real messenger this time? I get his texts, I have been really busy with my dutiesââÂ
âYou know what they say â about all work and no play?â You hear the click of heels against the floor, as she assuredly steps closer, âmaybe I can help you with the playââÂ
You knock on the door then, hand possessed, as you spot the woman with whom the voice belonged â her long silver locks tied into a braid that hung past her shoulders, her dark eyes finding yours and brow arched in curiosity, and wine stained lips curled.Â
âProfessor, Iâm sorry to interrupt, but our meeting?â Your voice was laced with irritation you didn't intend to have, âI have a class after this, so unless youâd like to reschedule?âÂ
Suguruâs lips part, only for Mei Mei to speak first, âIâm sorry about that â thatâs my fault â old friends you know?â Her head tilts, as if to say, no, I know you donât know, âand you are one of Suguruâs little students?âÂ
âIâm his former T.A. and he is my thesis advisor,â and his girlfriend, you want to add â ex girlfriend, rather, but the words are as taboo as your feelings are, âIâm sure Professor Geto wouldnât mind speaking to you after our meeting if you could wait,âÂ
And again Suguru opens his mouth to speak, but she cuts him off again, âOh I wouldnât mind waiting at all, not for him,â she walks past, âIâll wait for you in your office, Suguru,â and you have to force your expression to be neutral, a knot in your gut, and a fist clenched and hidden around the handle of your bag, âIâll make myself comfortable,âÂ
The lecture hall door closes behind her, the click of the door brings silence between the two of you, âI apologize ifââÂ
âNo, I should be sorry for interrupting,â you cut him off, your throat tied into knots, a distinct dull ache in your chest that surely shouldnât belong to you â not after all of this, âI should have just rescheduledââÂ
âNo, Iâm glad you interrupted,â he says, âwe have an appointment and she really is only aââÂ
âYou donât owe me an explanation, Professor,â and the title seems to cut this time, slicing through his mask, fraying his calm demeanor and leaving behind a deep frown, âitâs your business, not mine,â not anymore.Â
His mouth opens and close, before he speaks, âMaybe not as a professor,â he says softly, taking a step forward, âbut I think I do as yourââÂ
âIâm not âyourâ anythingââ you interrupt him, taking a step back, âIâm only a student, and your advisee, nothing else, Professor Geto,â youâre turning to leave, âletâs reschedule after all, I have somewhere to be,âÂ
You had to be somewhere that wasnât here â here with dredged up emotions that had no right belonging to you. Ones that you thought you had moved past, ones that shouldnât hurt you the way they do now, and ones that you donât know how to stop from spilling from your lips.Â
âYouâre not justââ
âDid you hear that she would wait for you?â you donât turn to look back at him, âI wish you could have done the same,â you give him a second, one second longer than he gave you when he broke up with you, to reply, but he says nothing, âIâll email you a few times to meet next week, just send me any edits you have on my pages.âÂ
The door clicks behind you as you leave the classroom behind, wondering if you had ever rid yourself of your feelings, or if you had simply buried itâÂ
And now, you are starting to unearth it â and your world may crumble underneath you along with it.Â
There was something wrong with him.Â
But there always was â when it came to you.Â
Suguru stared at the email you had sent later that week, opting to skip the in person meeting again for the third week in a row. The semester was over half over â and now the other department head had started in Kyoto, so he had a little more free time â and yet he couldnât use it to help you, at least not really.Â
Your thesis was shaping up â you were on the right track now, and he knew your paper would need little edits before being submitted for peer review. And when it did, a journal would be lucky to publish it. By that standard, he could take a more hands off approach â but he never wanted to be hands off, not with you.Â
He wanted nothing more than to take you into his arms, fingers trace the curve of your cheek as heâs done countless times before, and press a kiss to those lips that consume his consciousness.Â
But he couldnât.Â
Not when he was the one who had broken your heart, when you had managed to piece it back together, and when you had found happiness with someone else.Â
Something he wasnât sure he could ever do.Â
Mei Mei was an unforeseen complication â a donor that made some generous investments in the university â trivial with the amount of wealth she possessed, mostly due to Satoruâs convincing. And Satoru was the reason she had decided to sit in on his class â and he was stuck entertaining her, while his best friend was away on his sabbatical. And he couldnât resist an opportunity to fuck with him while he was away â his apparent revenge after Suguru had avoided his texts.Â
And your reaction wasânot what he expected. He pursed his lips, you were jealous right? Thatâs what you seemed to imply with your words â as if Mei Mei was a friend he would be interested in. The pot calling the kettle black â when you were the one to move on first. A sigh caught in his throat, not that he had any right to complain. Not when it was his fault. Â
But when the only person he was truly in love with was in front of him â the pain in your gaze as fresh as it was the day he had broken up with you â it was hard to hold back, especially when he wanted nothing more than toâ
And then there was a knock at his door, âitâs me,â your voice came through the wood, his eyes sliding to the time, it was late into the evening, âcan I come in?âÂ
âYes, come in,âÂ
âI apologize, I just had a few questions I wasnât able to ask over email, and since I was on campus, I thoughtââÂ
He shakes his head, your rambles still as endearing as they always were â though you had kicked the habit in your papers, you couldnât help but ramble in the way you spoke, âNo need to explain, what can I help you with?âÂ
You lean back, hands folded in your lap, âDo you remember when we discussed the concept of a happiness pump as a criticism of utilitarianism?âÂ
âYes, in class, we discussed it â the idea of someone who will do anything to make others happy, even if it makes them miserable,â he tilts his head, as he leans back in his chair, eyes betraying him as he watches your dress ride up ever so slightly as you cross your legs â he forces his gaze to your face, âdo you plan on using it in your thesisââÂ
Your eyes could cut stone with its biting glare, âNo, I donât, I wanted to talk about it in context of why you broke up with me â do you plan on being a happiness pump for the rest of your life? Or is that simply for me?âÂ
His mind moves slowly as his words do, âwhatââÂ
âBecause itâs only for me, itâs flattering â if itâs what you do for everyone, well, itâs just exhausting,â you scoff, twirling a strand of your hair with your finger, âespecially when your idea of what will make others happy is so misled,âÂ
âAnd howâs that?â He says through gritted teeth.Â
And youâre rising from your chair, âYou think my happiness means to make yourself miserable, when it does nothing more than make me unhappy,â youâre rounding the desk, fingertips dragging over the edge of the surface, âdo you want to spend the rest of your life miserable? Do you think that girlfriend of yours will make you happy?âÂ
âSheâs notââ and your heels clicking against the wood cuts him off.Â
And youâre only drawing closer and closer, and he canât bring himself to speak â words caught in his throat because he knew anything he uttered would break this spell, and he wanted nothing more than to succumb, âpumped full of unhappiness when it could very well be the oppositeââ and your hand is sliding up his chest, toying with the top buttons of his button-up, lips ghosting his ear as you whisper, âwhen you know I know exactly how to pump you, donât I?âÂ
âSweetheart, please, we canâtââ and your fingers finding the buckle of his belt, a gasp lodged in his throat, as your hand grazes his tenting bulge, twitching against your thumb as it runs over the clothed tip, âfuckââÂ
âWe could be so happy, like before,â your lips brush against his, and he crumbles under your touch â his resistance crumbles like a statue made to wait, and god, heâs waited so long for this â too long.Â
His lips find yours in a bruising kiss, the way heâs wanted to since he had watched you leave that day â the way he should have, the way he should have grabbed your hand and stopped you, pulled you into his arms, and never let you go.Â
And he never would again.Â
BUZZ. BUZZ. BUZZ.Â
Suguru jolts awake at the sound of his phone, a paper stuck to his face, drool sticky at the corner of his mouth. He tugs the paper away, rubbing his eyes, as his heart slowly retracts from his throat.Â
A dream. He runs his fingers through his hair, leaning back in his chair, what the fuck was he doing? Sleeping at his desk again accompanied by wet dreams of you â he thought he had grown from this. But you always sent him right back where he started, his eyes falling to the bulge in his pants. He ignores it, gathering his things and tracing the edge of his desk as he rounded it to leave his office. He took a look over his shoulder at his office that he spent so much time with, he was sure of one thing â he flicked off the light â you would be the one to haunt him.Â
For the rest of his days.Â
âBaby, arenât you gonna get up now?â Yuta murmurs in your ear, pressing sweet kisses to the skin behind it, fingers resting against the nape of your neck, âyou said you have to practice for your thesis presentation,âÂ
You mumbled, burying your face in his neck, as the two of you lie entangled on the couch for your mid afternoon Saturday nap, âa few more minutes,âÂ
The semester had been going by far too quick, days slipping into weeks, and now there was just over a month left in the semester. And soon youâd be graduating â his fingers raked gently through your hair â and he didnât exactly know what that meant for the two of you.Â
He still has a year left in his program, and you were going to be moving on â though you werenât sure exactly where. And he would be here â but what then? Would it be a long distance relationship ? Would you look for opportunities here? Or would it be something else?Â
He didnât want to think about other possibilities.Â
So many of his friends had warned him not to date while in grad school â that it would only end in heartbreak, and the more significant fact that it would always end. Your face nuzzled into his neck, warm breath still warming his skin, as he pressed a kiss to the top of your head â and he never wanted to be apart, not from you.Â
âBaby,â you mumble, âwhat time is it?â And he canât help but smile at you, as he reaches for his phone.Â
âItâs almost four-thirty,â and you groan softly, wrapping your arms around him tighter, âyou still have time before you have to go practice donât you?âÂ
âNo, I reserved the classroom until seven, if I donât go now, I wonât have enough time to practice,â you kiss his neck, âI have to get as much practice in this month before doing my defense,â You untangle your limbs from his and haul yourself to your feet, his body already mourning the absence of your heat. He watches you make your way to the bedroom to change, the door still open as you strip your shirt off.
His gaze admires you as you do, shifting to sitting up, his chin leaning against the back of the couch, âWhen is your defense again?âÂ
âItâs in three weeks,â you sigh, as you tug a shirt over your head, âIâm so nervous, I have to start practicing now or Iâll drive myself insane,â and youâre stripping off your shorts in exchange for some jeans, âmy advisor, many of my professors, students from the department, and maybe some undergrads might attend,â you turn, as you finish changing, catching his admiring gaze with a slight smirk, âand unlike you, they wonât just be interested in staring at me,âÂ
âI think some of them definitely will,â he smiles, and you walk over, leaning down to press a sweet kiss to his lips, âat least, Iâll be, if you let me,âÂ
Your lips curl, âOh yeah? I think Iâll be distracted if you keep giving me this puppy dog look, baby,â you kiss his nose, âmight make me walk over in the middle of the defense and kiss you,âÂ
A soft chuckle leaves his throat, âThat would cause a scene, but I could also be some moral support â a friendly face,âÂ
âMore than friendly, youâre selling yourself short, Yu,â you kiss him again, and he can taste the lingering salt and butter of the popcorn you two had ate earlier during your afternoon movie turned nap time, âbut I think having you there would make me more nervous, so is it okay if we just have dinner to celebrate or cheer me up after?âÂ
His brows knit together, âYou donât want me there?â but Geto gets to be there? The unspoken feelings he canât find in him to voice, the words lodged in his chest, ricocheting off his ribs if only to free themselves from his anxious heart to spill from his lips â but they donât.Â
âI do, Yu, of course, but I think having you there will just make me more nervous, Iâll just keep looking at you instead of addressing the whole audience, andâŠâ you bite your lip, âwith Professor Geto already having to be there, I think I would spend the whole time worrying about the two of you together than about my defense,âÂ
And his heart sinks â your ex gets to be there, but he doesnât? At one of your most important moments? He knows logically the only reason you ask because you canât ask Geto â but it doesnât hurt any less. Does he always have to be the nice one? The mature one? Couldnât he argue with you?
No, but he could ask.Â
âDo you think Iâll make a scene or that heâllââ and youâre shaking your head, your fingers cupping his cheek.Â
âOf course not. I know you would do nothing but support me, but still forcing you two of be in the room together,â you press a kiss to his forehead, âeven if you say itâs okay, I know itâs still hard,â his lips part, but you add, âand it would be awkward for me too. And I canât do anything about Geto, but I can ask you,âÂ
You could always ask him. He would do anything for you â but did his feelings matter as much to you?Â
âOf course, I understand,â your lips curl, and youâre pulling him into a hug, you rake your fingers through his hair.Â
âAre you sure?â You murmur, pressing your forehead to his, âyou can tell me if youâre not okay with it,âÂ
He could tell you that heâs not â he could tell you that itâs important for him to come, for everyone to see that he was important to you, for him to see that he was important. But it wasnât about him. This was your defense, shouldnât you have a right to have who you want there?Â
Even if it wasnât him.Â
âItâs fine baby, I just want to support you,â he kisses your lips, âbut Iâll plan something special for after you pass your defense â because I know you will,âÂ
You kiss him again, softer and fuller this time, as your fingers run down his cheek, âYou donât have to plan anything â I just want you, and maybe some food,â and he chuckles, as you place butterfly kisses all over his face, âI love you,âÂ
And he knew you did â you loved him â and that was enough, right?Â
âI love you too,â and youâre pulling away, as you pull on your shoes and grab your bag.Â
âIâll be home by eight, should I grab dinner?â and he leans back on the couch, nodding, âIâll see you when I get home okay?â
And he was the one you always came home to â the one you wanted to come home to â and that was enough.Â
âSee you soon, baby.âÂ
For now.Â
You enter the lecture hall, the door closing behind you with a click that rings in the silence.Â
Of course.Â
Of course you ended up with the lecture hall you had with Suguruâs class. You round the podium at the bottom, and give a terse chuckle, how had it been so long but so little time? How many days had you watched him lecture here â only to end up falling for him after? Even despite how much you hated him â it was so easy.Â
And still so hard.Â
You set up your phone to record yourself, if only so you could fine tune your presentation, and see any spots that you struggle. You prop it up, making sure itâs framed correctly on the desk directly in front of you. You run through your presentation once, noting spots for improvements or thoughts for potential questions people could pose during your defense.Â
You flipped through a few pages of your notes â wondering how this semester had flown by.Â
The rest of your thesis was completed over email â brief email exchanges and your thoughts exchanged through notes scrawled on the pages he scanned to you. It was better this way â you didnât have to see him. You didnât have to see the smile on his lips that you didnât put there, a stray lipstick mark on his collar that you didnât stain, or the happiness in his voice that you didnât cause.Â
No, you didnât need to see that.Â
But you didnât know why.Â
Why did the idea of him moving on irk you when you had already moved on? You werenât vindictive â your fingers drumming against the podium â you wanted him to be happy, to find someone who made him happy â maybe in all the ways you couldnât. But the stubborn thought remained â the same one that kept you up crying every night after he broke your heart and haunted you even in your happiest of nights â that he could have had it all with you â but he didnât. And now here you both were, fake smiles plastered in front of each other whenever your paths crossed, as if those lips hadnât murmured âI love youâ before in the quiet of the night.Â
But why did it matter? You were happy with Yuta, you had moved on, and yet â when you saw Suguru with her, it felt as if the stitches holding your heart together had come undone, and you were back â right where you started.Â
But it didnât matter. Either way the thesis was complete, and now all that was left in front of you was the defense, then you would be done â with this project, with your degree, and with Suguru.Â
But would you ever be done with him?Â
There was a knock at the door, and you turn only to find Suguru leaning against the frame, âSorry to interrupt,âÂ
Apparently you would never be.Â
Your shock lasts a moment, before your eyes flicker back to your stack of papers, âDo you need something?â The question comes more bitingly than you intended, but you donât bother to gauge his reaction, focusing on mindlessly rifling through your presentation.Â
âI forgot my notes for tomorrowâs class,â he says, quiet steps ringing in the silence of the lecture hall, âdidnât mean to interrupt,â and youâre gathering your notes, catching a glimpse before you step back from the podium, âare you practicing for your defense?â
âI am,â your answer is as terse as your emails, eyes fixed anywhere but where Suguru stood, as he pulled his file from one of the shelves inside the podium.Â
âDo you need any help?â He asks, and you almost want to ask: âhavenât you helped me enough?â But you donât, only shaking your head in reply. The silence drags on for far too long, âcan we talk?âÂ
Your muscles tense, a bow drawn taut for an argument, but you would draw blood first, âWhat is there to talk about, ProfessorââÂ
His calm facade cracks, irritation seeping in like poison through the fractures,âYou donât need to call me thatââÂ
âI do,â you cut him off, âbecause thatâs what you are. My professor. Nothing more,â and itâs a line in the sand youâve drawn since youâve met again, one he hasnât dared to toe, much less cross, until now.Â
His voice is broken, âWe were so much more,â yes, you both were. He was everything to you as you were to him â but that was before. And this was now.Â
âOperative words are key, Professor â âwereâ is past tense,âÂ
âBut weâre here now, arenât we? How long are we going to avoid discussing this?âÂ
You scoff, âam I the one who avoided it? Do I have to discuss it now on your terms â when you didnât even give me a chance to make my own decisions before?â Your fingers curl into fists, âyou broke me, you broke me and now you come back wanting to talk as if you didnât do the breaking to begin with? You donât get to come back when Iâm fixed,â the bottled emotions burst at the seams of its lid, the contents more vile than when they were placed inside, resentment fermented into rage.Â
âI know,â he says softly, âIâm not trying to come back, not if thatâs what you donât want. Iâm sorry I hurt you. Iâm sorry I left you. I thought it was the best for youââÂ
âBecause you know better than I do?â You give a bitter chuckle, âdo you know infantilizing it is to have someone make your decisions for you? I know what I wanted, Suguru, and I would have chosen you, every timeââ
âThat was the problem,â he cuts you off, âI wanted you to choose yourself,âÂ
âDo you not understand that choosing you is choosing myself too? Because it would have been a choice for me, for us, for us to be happy,âÂ
And those words seem to sink in the silence, his eyes averting from yours, a hand scrubbing down his face.Â
âYouâre right,â he finally says, âIâm sorry,â his words are quiet, but heavy â a rock sinking slightly into near still waters, âI wanted you to have everything, but I didnât take into consideration what that meant to you,â he says, âI suppose I didnât consider what I owe you,â he adds, and you shake your head, a small smile on your lips.Â
âShut up,â a chuckle leaves your lips despite yourself, cooling the white hot anger to warm wistfulness, âI wish it could have worked out,â and he nods, a small frown on his lips.Â
âMe too,âÂ
âBut maybe it was for the best,â and his eyes find yours, as you step back to the podium to place your papers down, âit was never going to work between us. It was already too complicated to begin with, and when we finally got together, there was a time limit,â you find his gaze again, unreadable, âmaybe it was for the best we moved on,â he doesnât reply, âI should get back to work,âÂ
He nods, as he turns to leave, casting a glance back over his shoulder, âLet me know if you need help with anything. Practice or otherwise, has the final formatting of your thesis been approved?âÂ
âIt hasnât yet, but I believe I followed the guidelines correctly, so there shouldnât be an issue,â you say, and he nods, as the door clicks open, as he turns the handle, âthank you again, for everything,â and thereâs far too much that can encompass everything that he did even in that word, but you meant it all the same. Everything he did had led you to this moment, and you would never be ungrateful for the impact he had.Â
âOf course, Iâll always be there for you, anytime,â his eyes find yours, lips curled in a wanting smile that wishes to say more, âeven when I actually do move on.âÂ
And heâs gone in a moment, the door shutting behind him, as your gaze is fixed on the place he just stood â lips parted.
What?Â
âProfessor,â you stop him, fingers reaching for him, even as you promised you wouldnât â wouldnât put yourself here again, wouldnât find yourself falling into his grasp again, but here you were again â you never learned your lesson. But you wondered if that made you a bad student or him a bad professor, âwhat do you mean?âÂ
Heâs turning only for your hand to grasp onto the sleeve of his jacket, your name leaving his lips but you cut him off.Â
The question wavers on your lips, âAre you not withââÂ
âNo, Iâm not. Sheâs just a friend, like I said,â he runs his fingers through his hair, âI know itâs ironic for me to be the one to break up with you, and not have moved on, but, I havenât,â his fingers brush against your own holding his jacket, before slowly intertwining, âI donât know if I ever will,âÂ
âWell, some philosophers believe in endurantism â the past is dead, and we live here and now â we canât do anything about what happened then â weâre whole right now, and not defined by what happened then, or what happens in the future,â your fingers squeeze his, âif we let this go, we could just exist now â the past erased and the future unclear â but weâre no less whole, are we?â your fingers slowly let go of his â but his donât. He only clings to your fingers still, stubbornly laced.Â
âPerhaps you arenât,â and heâs gently tugging you closer, you donât find yourself resisting, but instead leaning into his touch, âbut I always find myself clinging to my past â when youâre contained within it,â he lifts your hand to his lips, âwhat future do I have without you?â He presses a soft kiss that steals your logic, âand what present is worth being in that I donât get to spend at your side?âÂ
âSuguruââ and he sighs, as draws closer to you, breath warming your lips.Â
âBeen so long since Iâve heard you say my name,â his lips ghost your jaw, barely not brushing against it, âmy name doesnât sound the same unless itâs leaving your lips,âÂ
âWe shouldnât,â but even so, the back of his hand lightly drags against your why shouldnât you? Not when it felt so good, not when it felt this right, and your lips graze his, âSuguru,â youâre murmuring, the faint lingering taste of coffee on his lips, âfuckââÂ
RING. RING. RING. Â
Your eyes flutter open to find yourself in bed alone, your hand reaching beside you only to find more of your blanket and more pillows beside you, as it dawns on you.Â
A dream. Of course. A sigh stuck in your throat â no, you had watched him leave that night without another word, even though you had so many to say, but none at all. And even now, you didnât know what to say â to Suguru, to yourself, or to Yuta.Â
So you said nothing. And instead, youâre left with an aching in your chest as you grab your phone to find a text from YutaâÂ
Had to go in early todayâ Iâll see you for dinner, babyÂ
You lock your screen and place your phone on the nightstand, before turning back around to bury yourself in bed â as if staying in bed would bury your feelings along with yourselfâ
Because thatâs not whose text you wanted to see.Â
âYouâre home,â Yuta says when he walks through the door to find you lying on the couch and scrolling on your phone.Â
âNo âhi youâre home?ââ And Yuta snorts, as he strips off his clothes, and walks in to place a kiss on your lips, burying his face in the crook of your neck, drawing a giggle from your lips, âI missed you too,â
âI thought you were going to practice today. Your defense is the day after tomorrow. I didnât think Iâd get to see you out of a classroom until tomorrow evening when it was done,â you run your fingers through his dark locks, âthought Iâd have to pry you away from your notecards,âÂ
âHa, ha,â you kiss his cheek, brushing your nose against it, âI thought it would be good to take a break tomorrow, and Iâm just exhausted after all the practice I did tonight,â you sigh, and heâs on the couch beside you, wrapping his arms around your middle, âthis seems like a much better use of my time,â you settle into his arms, âhow was your day?âÂ
Yuta shrugs, kissing your shoulder, âBetter now,â and you chuckle, rumbling against his skin, sending a shiver up his spine as you lean over, his cheeks a pretty flush that only makes your lips curl, âitâs been too long since we got time like this. I donât even know where to start,â he nuzzled the side of your face.Â
You turn your head to kiss him fully, lips sliding against his, voice a quiet murmur, âthen letâs make our time count,â your sweet kiss grows deeper, your tongue at the seam of his lips that he parts for you. You swallow his moan with a smirk on your lips, your body moving against his slowly, his tenting erection catching on your clit through the far too thin material of your shorts.Â
âFuck,â you murmur, as you slowly begin to grind on his bulge, the delicious friction too much for him as well, head lolling back against the couch, âYu, sâgood,â
âMm,â Yuta parts from your lips, panting as your lips press eager kisses down his neck, a desperation he hadnât sensed before from you, âbaby, slow down,â and you almost donât seem to hear him, as your fingers find their way between your bodies to touch him through his joggers, ângh, you donât need toââÂ
But you seemingly do, as your thumb flicks against the tip, a soft hiss escapes his lips, âlike that, pretty boy?â Youâre murmuring in his ear, âgonna make you feel so good, because youâre sâgood fâme,âÂ
And youâre slipping his joggers and boxers down to free his cock, stroking him from base to tip, lovely beads of precum dripping down his length and your knuckles.Â
âFuck,â heâs covering his face with his hand, his fingers grasping at your hips, before eager fingers slide between your thighs and underneath your underwear, drawing a lovely gasp from your lips, âwanna make you feel good too, baby,â as his fingers circle your dripping entrance teasingly, a smirk on his lips, as he sinks one then two fingers in knuckle deepâ
âYuââ your hand stills for a moment as his fingers work their way against your drenched insides, âfuckââ and youâre melting into his arms â and maybe this was just what you both needed.Â
âThis was so nice,â you mumble against his chest later, pressing soft kisses against his skin as the two of you laid entangled in the afterglow, âitâs been too long,âÂ
He hums, âIt was perfect,â his fingers skim down your cheek, âyou know we could have this every day,â and you chuckle, the corner of your lips curled mischievously.Â
âDo you have the stamina for that?â you tease, painting a heated flush across his cheeks, as he rolls his eyes.Â
âI mean, we could go to sleep like this every night, and wake up together every morning if we moved in together,â and you blink at him, his nervousness overcoming him as he begins to backpedal, âw-we donât have to! I just thought Iâm ready for the next step with you. And I want toââÂ
You cut him off with a soft kiss, pausing his worries and anxiety in the syrupy sweetness of your kiss, before you pull away, âI think I need some time to think about it,âÂ
And he nods, âtake all the time you need, baby,â pressing a kiss to your forehead, but a thought still niggles into the forefront of his mind that he canât help but dwell onâÂ
Would you say yes if it was Geto asking?Â
It always seemed that you were ready when it came to him. Ready to be with him, no matter what the consequence, willing to make it work â but with him, it felt as if he was always the one chasing, and you were reluctantly within his grasp.Â
As you drew closer into his arms as the two of you settled down to sleep, his fingers running softly through your hair, he wondered how long it would be until he felt as if he wasnât the one desperately holding onto you, even as you seemingly always slipped away.Â
Even as he held you against his chest, heartbeat under where your head laid. He knew you were the one who had his heart.Â
He could only hope you wouldnât drop it.Â
âFuck, fuck, fuck,â it wasnât supposed to be like this, but it was always like this. No matter how well prepared you felt, something always managed to go wrong at the last minute. It was always when you were lulled into a false sense of security, only to have a rude awakeningâ
And this time it came in the form of an email rejecting your thesis formatting as incorrect. An email that came in that morning, but you had slept through, choosing to sleep in past noon after last night. And when your eyes fluttered open, Yuta was gone already for the day, you rolled over to check your email when you saw it.Â
Fuck.Â
You barely had time to text Yuta what had happened before rushing to the library to seek possible help from the librarians â fuck, you would have paid every overdue library charge if necessary. You didnât want to wait another semester to present again. It would be more time wasted, more time spent working towards something youâre already for, more time spent in this place that you didnât want to linger in any longer.Â
How had you managed to fuck it up so bad? Now every one of your citations and in text citations would need to be redone, along with reformatting by 5:00 PM today. And it was already 2:00 PM.Â
But maybe you were going to have to, as you rushed to pull the library door open, only to find it was closed this weekend due to scheduled maintenance.Â
Double fuck.Â
Your eyes burned with tears that you didnât want to shed right now. You had no time to cry. You had no time to panic. But it was all you wanted to do â just crawl into bed and cry.Â
You were turning back around to leave, when you nearly ran intoâÂ
He steadies you, his fingers brushing your shoulders, as his lips part to greet you, but his brow furrows when he sees your expression, âwhatâs wrong? Are you okay?âÂ
And that wasnât the right question to ask.Â
Tears slip from your eyes before words can, as Suguru blinks, concern flooding his face, as his hand finds yours and he takes you to his office nearby. It takes a few minutes for you to calm down (several tissues later) and you finally explained to him what happened.Â
His hand never leaves yours.Â
âI donât know what to do. I donât want to waste another semester here, I canât do that. I want to graduateââ Â
âListen, slow down for a second, ok?â His voice is soft, soothing your anxiety like a balm, even as your nerves flare as your eyes flicker to the time again, âThereâs time to fix this and go get it resubmitted before 5:00 PM. But, even if you do have to do another semester, whatâs so bad about that?â
You shake your head, biting your bottom lip, âI canât waste time like that. I already said I was graduating. If I have to stay another semester,â more tears trail down your cheeks, your nails digging into your knees, âhow could I face anyone after how hard I worked?âÂ
Suguru whispers your name, his fingers brushing against your cheek, âwhatâs another semester? Nothing will change. No one will view you any differently. But the more important thing is how you view yourself â and you know how hard you worked. Youâll be fine,âÂ
Youâre wiping your tears, sniffling, unable to meet his gaze, âHow do you have so much faith in me?âÂ
He gives a brief chuckle, âItâs you â how could I not?â And your eyes finally lift to meet his, as his thumb rubs lightly back and forth across your cheek, before he clears his throat, âwe have time to get it resubmitted,âÂ
ââWe?ââ and he stands up to grab a copy of your thesis and the error notes you had shown him.Â
âWell I canât have you do it, otherwise youâll end up submitting it late,â and you huff, a watery chuckle leaving your throat, âcome on.âÂ
âSuguru?â You call softly, as he turns, blinking at the sound of his name, âthank you.âÂ
âOf course.â and he smiles that damnable smile that made you fall for him â your heart squeezing and thudding against its bony cage, an aching that left you longing â a glance at your phone with Yutaâs notification that sent that longing sinking like a stone into the pit of your stomach.Â
No. It wasnât that.Â
It wasnât. Not if you let it be.Â
âIâm sorry,â
It had been quiet for sometime as the two of you made edits â him on the actual physical copy, while you edited the digital. The quiet scrape of his pen against paper and the clack of your keys are the only sound in his office. The very same one that the two of you had built your relationship from, and now here you were again. Except there was no banter, no smiles shared, nor even a knowing glance exchanged.Â
There was only silence.Â
Until you spoke first.Â
It was a silence you werenât accustomed to â a layer of awkwardness that had settled between the two of you as if to bandage the honesty that had shredded the false student-professor only relationship you had superimposed on top of the two of you.Â
Only for you to claw your way out â and claw him open as well.Â
But no bandage can seal a gaping wound for long, and there was only one way to deal with a bandage effectively, by ripping it off.Â
His eyes draw up slowly from the pages in front of him, glasses perched on the tip of his nose so precariously that you wanted to push them back, âYou have nothing to be sorry for â and you know itâs better to thank than apologize â Iâm always here to help,âÂ
But that wasnât what you were apologizing for.Â
âI meant for the other day,â you say softly, guilt was crawling at your throat.Â
His gaze grows heavy, âThereâs nothing to apologize for that either. You were right,â he adds, âI made decisions for us, when it should have been a discussion â especially when I said it was for youââ
âI wasnât sorry I said it,â you gently cut him off, fingers knitted together in your lap, âbut Iâm sorry for where and how I said it. It wasnât the time or place for that.â
âItâs really ok,â he tells you, a glance at his face telling you that it really was, âI would have yelled at myself far sooner, and nothing you said wasnât true,â his hand tugs at his tie, loosening it, his fingers wrapped around the fabric, âI wish I did it differently,âÂ
You shouldnât ask the question but it falls from your lips before you can stop it, âWhat would you have done differently?âÂ
And he gives a smile worthy of melancholyâs grasp, âI would have kept my promise to you,â and you know which one he means without him needing to say, âI would never have left you, if I hadnât been too busy being a happiness pump,â and those words stir warm coals in a fire you thought was long put out â but somehow burns still, a flicker of a promise for a spark.Â
One you couldnât stoke.Â
âWell, you make an excellent one,â and he scoffs, âno really, Iâve never seen someone so unhappy trying to make someone else happy before,âÂ
âI wouldnât say, âso unhappyâââ his pout is far too cute for your own good.Â
âCan really tell your life fell apart without me,â you say completely teasingly, as your lips curl, only to find his eyes on you still, âwhat?âÂ
He only shakes his head, âonly regretting not giving you lower than a 99 on your final paper,â and you gape at him as he bites back a chuckle, âI am the department head, maybe I couldââÂ
âYou mess with my gradesââ and your phone goes off â itâs Yuta. A text asking if everything was ok, before his face lights up your phone screen, and youâre not quick enough to avoid the awkward moment where Suguru sees it, âsorry IââÂ
âGo take it. I have plenty to get through,âÂ
âButââ but heâs already back to reviewing your citations as if nothing had happened as you pick up the call, screech of your chair as you get up to take the call, âhey, yeah I can talkââ and the door is closing behind you as you step outside.Â
You donât see the way he leans back, scrubbing a hand down his face to rest at his lips, âWhat am I doing?âÂ
And he really didnât know â as always, when it came to you.Â
âYouâll do amazing,â Yuta pressed another kiss to your lips, as you did the final adjustments to your outfit for the defense, âI canât wait to celebrate with you,âÂ
âI know, I canât wait for it to be over,â you sigh, pulling him into your arms, your chin perched on his shoulder, âyou still havenât told me what weâre doing,âÂ
He chuckles, his fingers cupping your cheek, âI told you itâs a surprise, so telling you would defeat the purpose,â you turn away to look at yourself again, âyou look perfect,âÂ
âYouâre just saying that because youâre too nice,â you grumble and he laughs, as you bite your lip, meeting his gaze in the mirror, âIâm sorry about not having you there,âÂ
And he feels a twinge in his chest, he had spent the last few days not trying to think about that. It wasnât important that he was there â it was important that youâd be coming home to him. Thatâs what mattered â or thatâs what he kept telling himself.Â
âItâs okay,â he intertwined his fingers with yours, and squeezed your hand, âIâll be here after, waiting for your good news. Because I know it will be,â and his arms pulled you against him, and he canât help but wonder why he doesnât want to let go.Â
Even if you were ready to go.Â
You barely remembered what you said.Â
You remembered how your stomach turned and twisted in knots you didnât know were physically possible as you made your way to the building where your defense was being held. Your fingers kept twiddling with your phone, checking the location and date listed in your email a million times to ensure you hadnât missed your defense already or that you didnât imagine your citations were accepted. You were sure your clothes would wrinkle from the sheer anxiety cladding through your veins, the vibration of nerves enough to beat creases into your freshly pressed clothes.Â
And you remembered seeing Suguru right when you walked in. He stood behind the table with the other members of the committee, chatting â and objectively, you hated how unfairly pretty he was. His long, inky hair tucked into a neat bun today, choosing to wear a crisp white button down, opting for no tie, but a off white sweater vest and black suit jacket over his shoulders, and lips curled in a small smile that only grows warmer when he catches sight of you from the corner of his eye. And it must be nerves, the way your heart flutters within your chest and the way that heat clings to your cheeks â nothing more.Â
Your eyes slide to him again â no one else.Â
You remembered how people filled into the classroom that you were defending your thesis in, as you shuffled around the front, setting up your presentation and notes for talking points. You spotted Maki, Panda, and Inumaki walk in, undoubtedly Yutaâs doing, along with a few of your other friends from the program. Your hands shook ever so slightly, even as you wrung them â a nervous habit you had picked up before large presentations or important milestones.Â
And then as people took their seats and it was 4:00 PM, it was time for your defense. You took a breath for a second â and your gaze finds not your friends, but Suguruâs. He offers you a smile, a look that tells you that he believes in you â always more than you ever had.Â
So you begin.Â
You donât remember what you said â but you remember speaking as you did a million times before in practice. You remember making an adlib or two that draws a few chuckles from your audience. But what you mostly remember is the few glances you stole from Suguru who listened intently, a mouthed encouragement when you took a pause.Â
And soon you were answering questions after concluding the main part of your presentation. You are fielding them from professors and students alike, until there was only time left for one more. There was silence for several moments â it felt like hours, the committee conferring and speaking amongst themselves.Â
âI think I can take one last question,â and your eyes darted over the group, finding no hands, until one slowly went up â one you were familiar with, âProfessor Geto?âÂ
Of course he would have a question â no less, the last one.Â
âI just had one comment about your thesis, not a question,â and with how he had poked and prodded at the fire of your work from the moment you met him â the way he pushed you head first into the flames, if only to temper the best version of your work, and of yourself. And even though you had burned yourself one too many times, you couldnât help but reach for it again and again, âafter conferring with the committee, congratulations, you passed your defense.â
The audience claps and congratulates you, a sea of shaking hands and kind words while you recover from the defense. But as the crowd disperses, you find Suguru walking towards you.Â
A silence settles over the two of you for a moment â a want to speak lingering between you two, but no words said. Why was it always when you had so much to say you found none of the thoughts you wanted to express? There wasnât enough time â but they would never be.
But he breaks it first.Â
âCongratulations on your defense. You did wonderfully,â he says, hands tucked into his pockets, as you bite your lip, cheeks burning.Â
âNo remark about me being on time? Or any little criticisms? Iâm shocked. Youâve lost your edge, Professor,â he chuckles, shaking his head.Â
âOh, there will be time for that later,â he replies, his hand slipping out from his pocket only to be placed gently on your shoulder, âbut right now, I just want you to know Iâm proud of your determination and grit, but mostly, Iâm proud of you,â
His name almost slips from your lips as your mouth opens and closes, words stuck in your throat, âThank you. It means so much,â especially from you. But you canât say that, âI canât thank you enough for everything youâve done for me,âÂ
âYou donât owe me anything,â and you chuckle, gaze finding his own, just as it always did.Â
âDonât I? I think I owe you a drink, I never did buy you one after all â purely for networking purposes,â you add, âand a thank you for saving my ass on these citations,âÂ
And heâs shaking his head, âAll I did is what you what have done for anyone else,âÂ
âAnd you wouldnât?â And he shrugs.Â
âFor a student? Maybe. For you? Always,â and you bite your lip, gaze falling, âwhat is it?Â
âWhy?â âWhy for me?â was the question you wanted to ask but you couldnât push the words past your lips even as they rested on your tongue.Â
But he knew the words.Â
âYou know the reasons,â he says softly, âI know you have nothing but amazing things ahead, and Iâd do anything to see you reach your goals,âÂ
And he would. He did.
âI can agree with that,â a hand clasps your shoulder, Yaga gives a small smile, âgood job,âÂ
âProfessor Yaga, oh my god,â you grin, resisting the urge to hug him, âhow are you? Are you feeling better?âÂ
âIâm well enough. Treatment has been honestly shit, but my son is doing a good enough job looking after me,â Yaga rubs the back of his head, âthat and balancing classes hasnât been easy for the kid.âÂ
âYour son goes here?â Professor Yaga points at a familiar cluster of three, âPanda?â You didnât really see a family resemblance but you supposed you didnât have to.Â
He nods, âbut Iâm not here to talk about him,â he holds his hand out to you, âIâm very proud of you. I know you have a bright future ahead. I apologize I couldnât helpââÂ
âYou did too much. Thank you Professor Yaga,â and then others are calling for you, âif you both will excuse me,âÂ
âOf course, I need to speak to Suguru so itâs just as well,â and your attention is pulled, but the corner of your eye still watches him, watches him leave the leave â leaving you behind here. Just as it should be, your gaze sliding back, as your fingers rested against your chest.Â
So why did it hurt so much?Â
Yuta was late â it seems he always was, when it came to you.Â
Even so, this time it was somewhat purposely, but he still had tried to be on time. He wanted to at least hear the very end of your defense, if not in sight, then outside the classroom. But he had run late, trying to straighten out reservations he made at a restaurant youâve been wanting to try for months. He had finally convinced them to bring out a cake as if to celebrate your birthday, but for your thesis. It was silly, as Yuta half walked half sprinted to the room of your defense, only to find it was over.Â
The doors to the lecture hall had been opened after your defense finished, some people filing out, while others lingered to speak to you or others. Yuta held the bouquet of flowers behind him, scanning the group for you â and his eyes fell on you â with Geto.Â
You were both off to the side, speaking alone, his hand clasped on your shoulder, before slipping off. And it was clear from the way he looked at you â that he felt the same for you as he always did. And youâ
You looked the same, as you always did, when it came to Geto.Â
Yutaâs fingers squeeze at the base of the flowers, plastic crinkling under his grasp. He hadnât asked why you had stopped meeting with him for your thesis â almost a relief to have your correspondence all over email, and not to face dealing with the weekly meetings. He hadnât asked, but he could assume some sort of argument happened, a discussion, a confession maybe â something you hadnât broached with him. And a part of him really didnât want you to. He didnât want to have the boat rocked on him â butâ
As he watched you become pulled away when another professor joined your conversation, and Geto was pulled away out of the room by that same professor â Yuta saw your eyes follow Getoâs back. The two walk past Yuta without notice, engrossed in their conversation, and Yuta catches a few snippets of it before theyâre out the door.Â
And he turned back to you â he knew he may have to be the one to rock it. Because the ship had already begun taking in water â and it was either he grasped onto the side with white knuckles and went down with it, or he let it go, letting it fall into the wreckage. He glanced away from you, starting to walk off towards the exit â because maybe this ship wasnât made to sail, but to sink.Â
And he couldnât let himself drown â even for you.Â
You checked your phone again as you left â no phone calls, not even a text back. You bit your lip as you made your way back to the apartment. You had already called him three times, but your anxiety was getting the better of you. He had told you he would meet you after the defense, but there wasnât any sign of him.Â
You opened the door to your place, keys jingling as head inside to find him sitting on the couch. You put your things down, as you head to the living room.Â
âYu? Are you okay? You werenât picking upââ and you see a bag of his things packed, âYuta?âÂ
âSorry I made you worry, baby, I just thought,â he sighs, unable to meet your gaze as he looks in front of him, âI thought I could wait, but I canât,âÂ
âYuta, what? WhatâsââÂ
Your name leaves his lips, cutting you off gently, as he finally looks at you, gaze heavy, âwe need to break up.âÂ
You donât have words.Â
No, you have one word.Â
âWhy?â You ask, as you take steps forward to sit beside him, as your mind struggles to keep up â your certificate still in your hand, the excitement of being done all but extinguished.Â
âIâm sorry, but donât you know why?â He asks softly, and your eyebrows knit together, shaking your head,Â
âWhat are you talking about?â And youâre wringing your hands, fingers nearly in knots, a sigh parting your lips as you try to soothe yourself, âYuta, I know Iâve been busy this semester with my thesis, but itâs done with. And we can go back toââÂ
âWe canât,â and it was so final â so definitive â and without a way for you to have a choice. Yet again. Were you doomed to repeat this cycle? Again and again. With no change in the outcome. And you donât know what to say, as you scrub a hand down your face.Â
âOkay then,â and your name slips from his lips, as you cross your arms.Â
âYou donât understandââ and your chuckle is so bitter.Â
âHow can I when you havenât explained? All youâve said are cryptic things that Iâm supposed to piece together what? What am I supposed to know?â Tears slip down your cheek, forcing your voice to stay steady, the stress of the last few months crashing down around you just as your relationship did, âI know that I havenât been the best girlfriend. And Iâm sorry. I really am,â your voice breaks, âBut I tried. I tried to communicate. I tried to spend time with you, even when I didnât have a minute to myself. You knew Iâd be busy. You knew that going in and stillââÂ
His voice is gentle, so gentle that it infuriates you â gentle even when heâs hurting you, âItâs not thatââÂ
âThen what is it?â You snap â you were tired of running in circles â you needed an answer, a tangible reason why.Â
âGeto,â you blink, as the confession settles over his face, âit wasnât your schedule. It was who you spent it with,â and youâre staring for a moment, expression crumbling under the weight of the truth.Â
âYuta, Yu, noââ you step towards him, but he only sighs, running a hand through his hair, âit was only for my thesis. Nothing happened between us. I promise,âÂ
âI trust you when you say nothing happened,â but his eyes lift to meet yours, âand in a way nothing has happened, because you still love him,âÂ
âyutaââÂ
âI know you love me, in some way,â the words leave his lips slowly, cutting you each syllable, but you canât imagine how deeply and how long heâs been cut by these thoughts already, âbut not like you love himââÂ
âThatâs notââÂ
âYou know before we started dating, I talked to Maki about how I feel, and I told her I was afraid that you would never look at me the way you look at him,â and the mended pieces of your heart break apart with new cracks with the way his voice wavers, âbut all this time, and still, you havenât. Even today, when I waited outside of the lecture hall, I saw you both together â and I know,â he breaks off, biting his lip, âI know it was him congratulating you, but the way you looked at him hadnât changedââÂ
Youâre shaking your head, âYuta, no, no, itâs just a look. I donât even know how I look at him, but it doesnâtââÂ
âI do know how you look. It hasnât changed,â heâs swallowing, his eyes fall to the floor, âand itâs not just that. Do you see a future with me?âÂ
âOf courseââÂ
âWhen I brought up moving in, you said youâd think about it, but have you?â you open and close your mouth, fingers grasping at the fabric of your clothes, âhave you thought about what happens after you graduate? Or whatâs next for us?â your silence is answer enough â sinking in for you, as it already did for him â slipping in between your ribs like a well placed dagger â and it had stabbed him all the same too, âyou love me, but I donât think youâre in love with me,âÂ
âYuta, I do, I do love youââ and he draws close to you, fingers cupping your cheek.Â
âBut the world doesnât stop for you when I come near? It doesnât feel as if I steal your breath when I hold you like this? Does it feel as if you donât wish to spend a moment without me?âÂ
âLove doesnât always have toââÂ
âBut it does â to some extent,â he pressed a kiss to your forehead, âyou imagined your future with him didnât you? Didnât even want to spend a moment apart?â And he gives a terse chuckle, âwe have to break up,âÂ
You donât want it to be true. You want to fight him, argue, convince him heâs wrong, that the explanation heâs pieced before you is falsified â a distorted version of how you felt conflated by misunderstandings.Â
But you canât.Â
âYuta, Iââ and he shakes his head, âno, Iâm sorry, I didnât, I didnât meanââ your eyes burn with tears, âIâm sorry,âÂ
He smiles softly, pulling you into his arms, âI knew we had rushed in, but I didnât want to wait, because I thought Iâd lose my chance,âÂ
âYuââ he kisses your cheek, âI do love you, I do,â and he nods, lips curling sadly, before he pulls you into another hug.Â
âI know. I love you too.âÂ
But it wasnât enough â and it wasnât right.Â
Not for either of you.Â
You donât know how much time you spent in bed after that. The semester had closed out, and you had curled up under your sheets â seemingly a new tradition you had of ending a semester with a break up. You wondered if graduating would end it â and if it didnât, you might have to reconsider going for your Ph.D. â if only to avoid this pain again.Â
You stick your head up out of your blanket, glancing at the light pooling in from the window â because time went on no matter how you felt, and the sun rose each day, despite it all.Â
Yuta had grabbed his things and left a while after. You still could feel the brush of his fingers against your skin as he squeezed your hand one last time.Â
âYouâre still my best friend,â you had told him, forcing your voice to stay even, and he chuckles, a smile on his lips.Â
âYouâre still mine too.âÂ
But even so you hadnât heard from him in a few days â but you couldnât blame him. You could only blame yourself. It had become so exceedingly clear that he was right. And you didnât know how you hadnât seen it. The anger still lingered, but anger was only the remnants of your love for him that still stubbornly clung to life, despite your efforts to move on.Â
But moving on wasnât as simple as finding feelings for someone else â not when you were only ever truly in love with one person.Â
You were still in love with Suguru.Â
Despite it all â you hadnât gotten over him, and you werenât sure you ever would. If months werenât enough, would years be? Would you ever get rid of the feelings you had for him, wrapped around your limbs, and had snuck into the crevices of your heart. An invasive species that perhaps you would never eradicate.Â
But you couldnât go back now. Not after everything that happened. NotÂ
Your phone goes off, lighting up on your bedside table before beginning to ring, your fingers slipping from inside your cocoon of blankets. You grab your phone â Professor Yaga?Â
âHello?âÂ
He greets you with your name, âI hope youâre doing well â I just wanted to reach out to congratulate you again on your successful defense,â you smile, sitting up as you do. The two of you make small talk as he discusses his recovery, reporting that heâs doing well.Â
âThank you so much Professor Yaga, for everything, really,â and he chuckles.Â
âThank you for being so understanding of my situation â it was difficult, but Iâm glad Suguru stepped for in me so well, and Iâm sure heâll do well in KyotoââÂ
âHeâs going back?â the question spills from your lips before you can even hold your tongue, âI didnât know you wereââÂ
âIâm not returning yet, but even if I do, I donât think I will be returning as a department head. So I gave Suguru the choice to stay department head here or move to Kyoto,â and he adds, âI did give him the choice to stay here or move back to Kyoto,â
And your throat is dry, âOh I see. Thatâs good for him,â a silence settles over the call for a moment, before Yaga speaks.
âHe hasnât made a decision yet,â Yaga says, and heâs staying for graduation so if youâd like to thank him in person since I interrupted your conversation, II know on good authority that heâs in his office right now,â and he adds, âitâs not too late if someone were to speak to him now,âÂ
You blink, âProfessor YagaââÂ
âYouâre all but graduated so Iâm allowed to say this â I wish you both the best. But I know Suguru has never been happier than when he was with you,â you bite your lip, âso for both of your sakes, you should go talk to him,âÂ
âThank you, Professor, for everything.â And you hang up without much to do, grabbing your bag and keys before heading out the door.Â
He was right, fingers squeezing around your phone â itâs what you owed him â and yourself.Â
Suguru sat back in his office, finally done with his papers for his philosophy class. The sun had long fled the sky, along with most staff and students. The end of the semester had come quick, and with it came a quiet and deserted campus with nothing but his grade book and the buzzing of the fluorescent lights in his office to keep him company.Â
Not that he was craving company.Â
He loosened his tie, unbuttoning a button or two on his shirt and on his cuffs, and then rolled his sleeves up. He was insane for still insisting on teaching a class amongst the insanity, though he did have another professor step in to co-teach the course. He didnât know why he had stuck to that sticking point when it was illogical â but, as he gazed down at the stack of final papers strewn in front of him doused in his red ink, he knew it wasnât a logical reason.Â
He was rifling through the graded stack, adding the scores to his grade book. This semester has been a mixed bag, a mix of grades â from high to low. Some of the papers were insightful, others were clear that they had only taken this class as a course to blow off. But even of all the high graded essays, not one of the papers compared to yours.Â
But of course, no one compares to you, and thatâs why he needed to leave. He knew that. He wanted you to be happy â even if that didnât include him. And after this semester, it couldnât. Being around you was an exercise of torture â Tantalus who had been starving for decades to get a taste of food, only to be hungrier after that morsel. A bite of the apple only makes you want to devour it, core and all.Â
It was just as Aristotle had said â desire was made of both rational and irrational, and his longing for you is rooted in the rational â because yes, perhaps his body craved you irrationally and carnally, but that was far overshadowed by the need for you after experiencing you for himself. This self made inducement would be the death of him, and Aristotle himself would call him a fool.Â
But he didnât need him to â because he was. A fool and a coward, just as you said. He sets down his pen, leaning against his hand, as he looks over at the blank reply email to Yaga with his cursor blinking. It would be for the best if he left for Kyoto again. So you didnât have to see him again.Â
And then there was a knock at his office door. He paused, eyes flicking up only to hear your voice through the door, âItâs me,âÂ
He hates the way his breath catches at the sound of you, heart picking up as his eyes flicker to the somewhat late hour and back. No words on his lips except the one thing he can say.Â
âCome in,âÂ
And you do â you always liked to tease him that he was the one who was unfair when it came to how he looked, but to him, it was you that was unfair. Your hair askew, chest rising and falling quick, clothes a little disheveled and yet, you were always the most gorgeous person heâd met in his life.Â
You shift in the entryway of the door, squirming seemingly under his gaze, âIs this a bad time?âÂ
Time never was in either of your favor, not ones that she found beguiling, except in a way meant to deceive. But time and time again, he allowed himself to be tricked â if only for a moment with you.Â
âNo, not at all. I just wrapped up grading the final papers,â and you give a soft chuckle, as you close the door behind you, before taking careful steps forward, eyes finding the stack nearly bleeding from his careful cuts and slashes.Â
âHow many red pens did you use up? Fifty?âÂ
âOh, only forty-nine this time, trying to be more conservative with my usage,â and you scoff, more of a chuckle than a sneer, âplus, I didnât have a student write several pages over the limit this timeââÂ
You gape at him, and he has to bite back his smile, âIt was one page, and you said I could,âÂ
âBullied into it was more like it,âÂ
âDonât know of a case where a student could bully a professor into anything,âÂ
âThey clearly havenât had you in their classroom,â and then he adds, a soft smile on his lips, âbut I suppose I could see them enjoy being bullied by a student as passionate about the subject â even if my office hours suffered for it,âÂ
âYou loved those office hours,â and he wants to say, yes, when you were there â but he canât. He told himself he wouldnât cross that line, âand I did too,â you add, and his eyes find yours â but maybe you would cross it instead, âyou remember what you said about not being my professor anymore?âÂ
And he did â all those months ago at the end of the first semester you had spent in class together, and heâs nodding, mouth impossibly dry, âWell Iâm as good as graduated, so youâre definitely not my professor, not anymore,âÂ
Your name slips from his lips, brow furrowed, a question almost, as if it canât be what your words implied, but youâre shaking your head, as you pull a folded paper from your bag, unfolding it before sliding it across his desk.Â
His eyes fall on it, and itâs the note he had written all those months ago â asking you for a drink, and for so much more. He had admired your determination, your wit, your beauty, your intellect, and so many other things he didnât have space to say âÂ
âSuguru,â and his eyes find yours, and god, why was it so easy to get lost in your heady gaze? âWe had said we didnât want to hurt each other â but I donât think thatâs something that can be avoided. You hurt me,â and he nods, lips parting ready for an apology, âbut Iâll probably hurt you â and I probably have already,âÂ
âSweetheartââ the pet name falls from his mouth as if itâs second nature, âIââÂ
âI canât stop thinking about you,â and the corner of his eyes burn with tears â is this a dream? Because he swears, it would be the cruelest one so far, âI canât stop loving you, and Iâve tried toâIâve tried to move on,âÂ
âMaybe it would be for the best,â but youâre shaking your head, as youâre slowly rounding his desk, and the truth canât help but fall from his lips, âI donât deserve youââÂ
âWhat did I say about making decisions about us without me?â And he sighs, resistance crumbling as you draw far too close â and he couldnât bear not to reach out, âyou have to take responsibility for your actions, donât you?âÂ
âSweetheartââÂ
âYou said you havenât moved on â is that still true?âÂ
His fingers reach across the chasm he had carved between the two of you, his fingers tracing the curve of your jaw and the swell of your cheek, just he had wanted to for all these months. And just a taste, a brush of your skin, heâd never let you go again.Â
âI never could â not from you,â his voice wavers, âevery day I missed you â I never wanted to break up with you, I just couldnât bear to be the reason that you ever hold yourself back from getting something you wanted,â and he gives a bitter chuckle, shaking his head, âwho knew I was the one doing that by leaving? And Iâm so sorry, I am soââÂ
And your forehead pressed against his, his words nearly swallowed with a sob, as he squeezes his eyes shut, tears burning a trail down his cheeks, that you gently thumb away before cupping his cheeks, âI want to hear something other than an apology,âÂ
His flutter open, lips brushing against your cheek, âI love you, I always have, sweetheart. I never stoppedââ his voice breaks, a crack in the dam enough to spill the truth from his lips and tears from his eyes, âand I promise Iâll never break my promises anymore â thatâs a contradiction, butââ and your fingers find purchase on his cheek, consuming the words on his lips with your touch, âI promise, Iâll spend the rest of my life making it up to you,âÂ
Your lips curl, eyes watery as you kiss away one of his tears, âIs that a proposal?â you tease, your other hand slides back through his black locks, twisting one strand around your finger, âseems a little fast for that when you havenât even kissed me properly yet,âÂ
He snorts softly, clearing his throat ever so slightly, âIf memory serves me, weâve done a lot more than kiss before,â and heâs daring closer, as you lean down, your legs pressed against the lip of his desk, ânearly in this office,â and heâs slipping up from his desk, his breath stolen from his lungs by the whisper of your perfumed skin, and his logic eroded by the heat of your body against his.Â
ââNearly,ââ you repeat with a soft hum, as your lips graze his jaw, âthen why donât we fix that?â your lips find his, a chaste kiss, barely a few seconds when you pull away half a centimeter, and heâs already leaning back in for another and another.Â
The familiar feel of your lips against yours makes him wonder how he had survived without you for so long â falling for you was as natural as breathing and kissing you was needed as oxygen. But each kiss only sends jolt over jolt up and down his body, and he wonders if he were to ever stop again, perhaps his heart would too.Â
Because all the time he had spent not with you was time spent living â perhaps breathing and existing. But no, he only felt alive when he was at your side â and in your arms. And especially against your lips. Delights in the way your lips part for him like muscle memory, tongue against yours â in a sloppy, desperate kiss that has every ounce of reason sucked from his mind (and likely into your mouth).Â
He parts if only for air, a string of spit connecting your lips, that he thumbs away, âIf I recall, you had something about me not being very ethical last time we did this,â he remarks, his lips parting before kissing down your jaw, your taste an addiction to his deprived lips â a desert wanderer ready to swallow you whole, âand now here you are,â heâs leaning back, as your hand is splayed back against the wood of his desk, your chest rising and falling, lips kiss bitten red and swollen from his own, âwhat do you call this?â His finger is toying with the top button of your blouse.Â
âA student taking after her teacher,â your lips find his pulse, teeth grazing his skin as if to taunt him, to goad him to go further, but, and his fingers slip behind. your thighs and squeeze no goading was needed â he was ready to devour you.Â
And heâs lifting you onto his desk, papers crumpling underneath and pens flung onto the floor, and a gasp caught in your throat as he pins you against it, before tugging his tie off.Â
âLooks like I still have plenty to teach you.âÂ
âSugu, fuck,â your fingers thread through his black locks, undone from his bun hy your own hands, your nails digging into his scalp. How long have you been in this office with him now? Half an hour? Almost an hour? Time had lost all meaning to you when he had kissed his way down your body.Â
Burning kisses that had stolen your thoughts from your mind and left only him in its wake â how had you lived without him? Your fingers had found their way to the back of his neck, as his lips mapped the peaks and valleys of your neck and collarbone.Â
âFuck,â a gasp parts your lips when his teeth teases the juncture of your neck and shoulder, sucking and biting again and agin, until heâs left pretty love bites gracing your across your skin.Â
And that sharp tongue of his dragged over the marks left blooming on your skin, as if couldnât simply get enough of you, and he couldnât.Â
âSuguru, pleaseââ youâre whining already and he barely began, and the all too smug smile against the swell of your breast only told you he thought the same.Â
âPatience, Princess, so needy fâme, arenât you?â But he obliged anyway, fingers deftly unbuttoning your shirt.Â
And now your blouse was nearly shrugged off, your bra undone with your pert nipples still sticky with his saliva and breasts covered in small marks from his teeth grazing your skin. And now he had tugged your skirt down and off, leaving you only in your underwear.Â
âYouâre making such a mess on my desk, sweetheart,â he clicks his tongue, as his large palms slide up your plush thighs and squeeze, drawing a lovely gasp from your lips, before heâs parting your thighs, âbut itâs such a pretty mess when itâs you,â and you were so fucking pretty with your legs parted like this, panties translucent from your juices leaking from your dripping folds, even glossy against the wood of his desk now. And he would be sure to make a bigger mess soon enough.Â
âSugu,â your cheeks burn as he stares, your embarrassment melting into a gasp when his fingers drag against your clothed slit teasingly, up and down, so meticulously again and again, until his fingers are sticky with your pre, ângh, pleaseââÂ
Your plea is enough for him to snap, as heâs tugging your underwear away and off, tucking the ruined panties into his pocket with a glint of his amethyst eyes in the low light of his office. Pretty folds in full display for him, with your swollen clit and glistening slit nearly begging for attention, and heâs more than happy to oblige.Â
And heâs running a finger down your lovely folds, gathering precum on his finger, far too slowly for your liking, as he takes his time to circle your clit, âAll this just from a few kisses?â lust pools in his gaze with a flicker of amusement, âso sensitive just for me,â your need for him as plain as the juices that seep from your pussy, walls fluttering and aching for something more than the tip of his finger.Â
âSuguru, fuck, I canât,â your toes curl when he finally pities you with a kiss to your needy cunt, nose bumping against your clit teasingly, the friction making your thighs tremble, âpleaseââÂ
âNever thought Iâd hear my quick witted T.A. beg for me like this, but I have dreamt of it,â you glance down at him, lips glossy with your pre, âI have to make up for time lost, time I wasted without you, princess,â and his thumb rubs at your clit, while his lips press sweet kisses to the flesh of your inner thigh, âitâs what I owe you, isnât it?âÂ
âIââ your sentence lost to a moan as he drags the flat of his tongue up your slit, tip of his tongue teasingly lingering around your entrance, and your hips buck into his touch, warm palms coming down to pin you in place against his desk.Â
You can barely stifle your moans, fingers flying up to press a hand over your mouth, as the tongue starts to flick and circle your clit, while a lithe finger teases your tight cunt, âIâm not one for sweets, but you may give me a sweet tooth,â and his lips close around your clit, sucking and licking, making your back arch, your arm behind you shaking as it struggled to keep your balance.Â
âFuuuuck, Sugu, Iââ youâre panting, head lolling back when he finally sinks a finger into your fluttering walls, the wet squelch of your cunt and your barely contained moans filling up the relative silence of his office, âpleaseââ and a second finger joins the first, a smirk on his lips as he kisses your puffy clit again, a groan when he feels the way your walls clench around his fingers, knuckle deep.Â
âGonna break my fingers at this rate, sweetheart,â heâs grunting, but even so heâs adding a third finger, the stretch far too delicious as it sends stripes of heat up and down your body and right to your spasming cunt, âwhat are you going to do when I put my cock inside? Our refresher lesson has barely begun,â and heâs enjoying this too much, and when his arms are hooking around your thighs, carefully lying you back on his desk, your hands slipping from his hair, and instead propping himself up on his elbows.Â
âSugu, whââ and your back arches as he begins to thrust deeper into your cunt, a strangled gasp on your lips that melts into a moan as his lips close around your clit. You can barely make out the obscene noises that leave your lips, as his fingers fuck you open, before heâs sucking hard â once, twice, and then a third timeâ âIâmââÂ
You can barely find the words before youâre cumming, walls squeezing and fluttering around his fingers while he fucks you through it, lapping at your juices, his name on your lips again and again, until you finally come down from your high. He pulls his fingers away from your twitching pussy, only to bury his face in between your thighs again.Â
âFuuuck, Suguââ your moans are broken as your body arches into him, fingers finding purchase on his shoulders, sucking and licking your release eagerly, seemingly hellbent on tasting every inch of you.Â
Pretty moans fell from your mouth, muffled as you clasped your hand over your lips, âcanât waste a drop, sweetheart,â heâs slurping and sucking at your cunt, and god, if anyone walked by his office, they would surely hear you both â hear the nasty squelch of your pussy and your barely muffled moans.Â
How many times did you orgasm from his tongue alone? You had lost track. Each time he would bring you over the edge with the thrust of his tongue or the suck of his lips, and he would eat you out through it, only building to the next and then the next.Â
âSugu, please, Iâm close, fuckââ and you canât even hear your own broken voice, not over the lewd sounds of his mouth sucking at your pussy, the coil tight in your stomach and ready to snap, until another hard suck makes you cum, hard.
Your fingers find their way into his hair, clutching at him desperately as you squirt all over his face, drenching him along with his desk, wood sticky and soaked with your release. Heâs lapping at your cunt, thighs twitching from your orgasm, until heâs finally pulling away to glance up at you with dark eyes, his chin and mouth glossy with your cum and his spit. His tongue darts out to clean both, before wiping the rest away with the back of his hand, glazed over gaze half lidded with need.Â
âSâgood for me, Princess,â heâs pressing gentle kisses up your body, âso pliant, and yet you were so mouthy before,â and his lips kiss that mouth of yours, letting you taste yourself on his tongue, as he presses you further into the desk, his arm slinked around your back. And youâre pulling him just as close, hands grasping at the front of his button-up.Â
And then youâre pushing him back, forcing him into his chair, as you get to your feet, before sinking to your knees. His breath catches, eyes watching you â your disheveled appearance, hair half mussed, and skin shiny with sweat, âlet me show you how mouthy I can be.âÂ
âImagine someone walked in now, see your pants down for your favorite student,â your tongue trailed up the underside of his clothed cock â and he could nearly cum looking down at you between his thighs, your kiss bitten lips pressing a sweet kiss to the head of his dick, thumbing at the leaking slit, licking your lips at the sight of the large stain of his precum on his cock, âSugu, youâre so fucking big, canât wait to feel this inside,â and his length twitches, a grunt in the back of his throat, as your fingers toy with the elastic of his boxers, snapping the waistband against his sensitive skin.Â
And god, heâs fucking pretty like this. Black locks falling in front of his perfectly sculpted cheekbones with a lovely flush settled over his featuresÂ
âFuck, sweetheart,â heâs panting, head nearly lolling back against the headrest of his chair, âgonna tease me after this long?â itâs half joking, half pleading, but youâre only clicking your tongue at him.Â
âYou made me wait much longer, Suguru â made me cry too,â and his gaze softens, lips parted with an apology that fades into a hiss, as you free him from his boxers, erection slapping against his still clothed abs, âbut now Iâm going to make you cry,â you press a teasing kiss to his weeping tip, flushed red with need, letting his white pearly release paint your lips, âuntil youâre begging to cum,âÂ
A strangled gasp caught in his throat, tracing the pretty veins and curves like it was made for you, âYouâre so pretty, Sugu â all of this is for me?â Your fingers slowly stroking his length, his moaning music to your ears, as your other hand teasing his balls, âgonna cum down my throat already? Canât cum this soon,â you cooed, his fingers digging into the armrests of his chair, and yet your fingers squeeze around his base, hips jerking into your touch.Â
âPrincess, stop teasingââ his protests had fallen on deaf ears, as you bring your pretty lips to his aching tip, only to trace his slit with the tip of his tongue, salty precum disappearing inside your mouth, and fuck, itâs enough for him to nearly cum there and then, âplease,âÂ
âDidnât know you could be so polite, Sugu, when begging for your student to swallow your cock,â and finally you let his cock part past your lips, and his head falls back, eyes fluttering shut as your tongue swirls around his length. It was already too much for him â so much, just as you were, your tongue tracing and teasing his dick, while your lips sucked along the base.Â
And you werenât doing much better, the weight of his cock against your tongue makes your cunt ache for him, and sneaking glances at his fucked out form â muffled moans of your name as he covers his lips with the back of his arm, as his dark gaze watches you sink his cock into your mouth again. Your hand is slipping into your throbbing pussy for some relief, as you bob up and down his length.Â
But he doesnât miss it, a groan at the sight of you swallowing his dick whole whole riding your own hand, âDoes fucking your mouth feel that good, Princess? Feel that good that you need to touch yourself?â And youâre moaning around his length, vibrations of sending shivers up his spine and a groan of your name from his lips, âSo fucking good fâme, Princess â too good for me,â heâs grunting, as you let his tip brush the back of your throat now, making pleasure rip up his body, âsweetheart, please, gânna fuck your throat if you keep that up,âÂ
And you ease off, letting his cock slap against your tongue as it slips out, âmaybe I want you, Sugu,â youâre kissing and licking along his length, âwant you to fuck my smart little mouth,âÂ
Fuck.Â
Youâre sliding his cock back in, his hips jerking against you as you let him sink all the way in, tip brushing against your throat again. And fuck, the wet squelch of your fingers inside you breaks him, as he starts to give an experimental thrust, a light one that has you moaning around him. Heâs gauging your reaction, only for you to force his length down more, barely not blowing his load there and then, as you look up at him, a smile in your eyes as if youâre daring him.Â
And he canât hold back.Â
Heâs fucking your mouth, your tongue massaging up and down his length as he thrusts inside your warm mouth, his nails digging into your locks as he holds you flush to his body. The sight of you on your knees, taking his dick as drool and pre drip down your chin, eyes nearly rolling back with pleasure as you do, making his cock twitch in your mouth.Â
âThat feel that good, Princess? Wanted me to fuck this mouth that bad? I should do it more often if thatâs what it takes.â heâs almost drunk off the pleasure, thrusts growing a little rougher as he grows close, âfuck, Iâm close, baby, whereââ and your hands are sliding around to his lower back, holding him in place as your answer, âshit, sweetheart, youâre going to be the death of me,â and you suck around him as his tip hits the back of your throat again, and thatâs itâ
He spills, hot cum flooding your mouth and down your throat, as you both moan in unison, large spurts devolving into smaller ones, as he comes down from his high. You donât waste a drop, swallowing every bit of it, as you finally pull away from his cock with a pop, the sight of your ruined lips with strings of spit and cum still connecting you to his dick is enough to have it twitching again.Â
âSweetheart, youâre sâgood to me,â heâs gently pulling you up into his lap, his fingers running through your hair. âI donât deserve you. I donâtââ and youâre cutting him off with a soft kiss that steals the words from his mind, your eyes shiny with tears.Â
âYou do, you do because I choose you, because I love you, and I know youâre sorry,â you cup his cheek, before lightly pinching it, âand if you ever do anything that stupid again, Iâm going to kill you and Iâll be ethically and morally justified,â and he chuckles, burying his face in the crook of your neck to press soft kisses to your skin, before pulling back to look up at you.Â
âYou have my permission to do that, because if I ever leave my soulmate again â itâs only the consequences of my actions,â and he kisses your forehead, before he presses his to yours, âand I donât want to live in a world where youâre not by my side,âÂ
You kiss him slowly, wrapping your arms around him, slowly heat building as the head of his cock bumps against the length of your cunt â the sparks grow into flames, threatening to engulf you both. And you would let them if only for one more second of his touch.Â
âSugu, please, I need you,â you murmur, breathing in his pants as your noses bump, âneed you inside me,â he cups your cheek, meeting in another kiss, before youâre lining yourself up, weeping cock bumping against your needy entrance.Â
âAre you ready?â You ask, and itâs for more than just this moment, itâs for everything that comes after â for every second that you both get to live together, âour phones are off right?âÂ
He snorts, âI turned it off when you entered my office,â and you laugh, shaking his head, as he places a kiss behind your ear.Â
âI did the same before I came in,â his fingers cup your cheek, as you lean into his warm palm, âjust you and me?â You echo from your first time together, and his lips curl into the softest smile.Â
âYou and me, sweetheart,â and youâre sinking onto him, tip parting your spread folds as your walls swallow him whole, inch by inch, and his fingers grasp at your hips, helping you ease onto his cock, pretty lips parted with a quiet murmur of your name.Â
And when he finally bottoms out inside you, heâs almost forgotten how good it felt â pleasure ripping up his spine as your hips are pressed flush to the other, âSo deep, Sugu, fuck,â your walls are fluttering around him pulling even deeper, clamping down as if he groans, âIâm gonna move,â you manage between pants.Â
You lift up to the tip before slowly beginning to bounce up and down, your moans filling his ears along with the squeaks and rattling of his computer chair. His eyes flutter open only to watch your breasts bounce up and down as you ride him, his hands reaching out to squeeze at the pillowy flesh, drawing a sharp gasp from your lips.Â
âSâbig, fuck, Sugu,â youâre moaning, a mess as you fucked yourself on him, but still not quite deep enough, and he begins to meet your thrusts with his own, making you fall forward holding onto him with a whine as he fucks up into you. The sounds of his balls slapping against your needy cunt ring in your ears, the grunts your pussy pulls from his mouth as he drives himself impossibly deep, ângh, Sugu, fuck, sâgoodâ,â youâre whining, back arching into his touch, nails digging into his shoulders, âplease,âÂ
âThatâs it, take my cock, pretty girl,â he murmurs, âso good for me. So tight, never going to leave this cunt at this rate, babyââÂ
And then they hear a door creak open and close nearby, freezing as they do, heart thumping against your ribs, but your wall flutters all the same, âthink theyâll see us like this?â He teases, and his cock twitches in your cunt, âspread out and fucked by your former professorâs cock?â And you know heâs only goading you as the footsteps depart, but your walls squeeze at the thought, âwant them to see how good you are for me? How well Iâve taught you to take this cock?âÂ
And he begins to fuck into you again, pistoning up into you, drawing more moans from your lips. He had taught you every inch and curve and vein of his dick, but this refresher would make sure youâd never forget.Â
âSugu, Iâm close, I-â and his hand is slipping between your bodies to rub at his clit right as his cock hits that spot that has you seeing stars as you cum hard around his cock. He watches the place your bodies meet, a white ring of cum around the base of his cock as your walls flutter around him.Â
He fucks you through your orgasm, hips stuttering as he twitches inside you, âfuck, sweetheart, where should Iââ and youâre moaning as you manage to meet his thrust to notch him even deeper as he finally cums.Â
His thick ropes paints your walls, as he rocks against you slowly, forcing his cum deeper and deeper, your name leaving your lips again and again â reverent whispers and promises muttered in your ear, as he finally stills underneath you.Â
Youâre leaning against him, mixed releases surely leaking onto his lap and the chair, both of your quiet pants filling the silence, until heâs breaking it. He kisses your lips again and again, before he stares at you â kiss bruised lips and the pretty sheen of sweat that clings to your skin, âItâs not fair youâre this perfect,â he murmurs, a thumb dragging down your lips, âhow would I have ever resisted you?âÂ
âLuckily, the universe did that for us,â and he huffs a chuckle, âand you,â you add in a small whisper, and he frowns, nodding.Â
âI did and I never will again, I promise, sweetheart,â heâs pressing sweet kisses to your burning skin, pulling you impossibly closer to him, your face buried in the crook of his neck, âIâm yours â yours to keep, yours to use, yours to love â you have my heart and my soul,â heâs cupping your cheek when you lift your head, âand Iâll never let go, because youâre the only answer to life I need, if youâll allow to be yours,âÂ
âYou were always mine,â your forehead pressed to his, âthatâs never changed, and it never will,âÂ
âYou always one up me, donât you?â And you roll your eyes.Â
âThe student has to surpass the master someday, doesnât she?â his lips curl.Â
âOh youâve done that a long time ago, Princess,â his lips graze yours again and again, and soon enough youâre shifting on his lap, until the chair buckles under the weight and the seat travels to the bottom of where itâs wheels rested. The two of you are silent a moment, before a giggle escapes your lips, âI think youâll have to get a new chair,â you murmur, and heâs chuckling, burying his face in the crook of your neck.Â
âWhy not the chair and the desk?â And youâre blinking before heâs lifting you up, before making you turn, pressing your front flush against the wood of the desk, âand if Iâm getting new furniture, I might as well use this to its full capacity, shouldnât I?â And heâs dragging his erection across your ass, âreally make sure itâs broken,â
You gasp, walls fluttering as his tip teased your messy entrance, âdonât you need broken inââ and he bottoms out in one thrust, as he presses his body against yours, lips pressing a kiss to the back of your neck, before his teeth dig into the sensitive flesh.Â
And he smirks as he hears you moan under him, as he soothes the blooming hickey with his tongue, âNo, I meant broken, sweetheart.â
âSuguru!â You called from his bedroom, as he smoothed his hair out in the bathroom mirror, a glance over his shoulder at the sound of your voice, âcan you come help me?âÂ
And how could he refuse? He steps out of the bathroom to only find you struggling with your Hakama. The formal garment hangs uselessly around your front, your brow furrowed and lips pursed.Â
He suppresses his laugh, forcing his tone to be even.Â
âDoes my incredibly brilliant girlfriend need help with her hood?â Your pout is enough for him to nearly break his promise that he wouldnât kiss you when your makeup was done, but he doesnât. Instead he takes the offending garment from around your neck, and you cross your arms.Â
âI can handle reading Hegelâs works â The Phenomenology of Spirit was irritating but doable,â and you scowl at the Hakama in his hand, âbut that thing was made to torture,âÂ
He snorts, âConsider it your last trial before graduation,âÂ
âNo, my last is seeing if my thesis was peer reviewed and accepted for publication somewhere,â you sigh, âI still have to make the editsââÂ
âThat can be a later problem, just focus on the moment right now,â he steps behind you after adjusting the Hakama and tying it around the back and front to secure it, before pressing a kiss to the top of your head, âand now you look both beautiful and properly dressed,âÂ
His arms wrap around your waist from behind, âSugu, we have to leave soon,âÂ
âJust a minute, just let this sink in,â he kisses the side of your neck, âhave I told you how proud I am of you?âÂ
âHmm, just about every second of the last few days,â you lean against him, and nothing ever felt so perfect â his arms were the only ones you belonged in.Â
And yet, why did that thought also hurt?Â
âWhat is iy, baby?â Suguru murmurs, ever too perceptive as always, âsomething on your mind,âÂ
âMore like someone,â you mumble, and youâre laying your head against his shoulder, âI canât help but feel guilty â Yuta and I just broke up and Iâmââ youâre shaking your head, âIâm so happy, and I hate myself for it,âÂ
Suguru frowns, âI donât know Yuta well, but I know he did love you, the same way I do, and I canât speak for him,â but then heâs squeezing your middle, âbut as someone who loves you, Iâd want you to be with someone who could make could make you happy,â you kiss his head, âand isnât that why he broke up with you? You both deserve that chance â even if itâs not each other.âÂ
âWhen did you get so smart?â and he pulls you impossibly closer, kissing along the neckline of your kimono.Â
âSomewhere between my bachelorâs degree and being your professor,â he adds with his lips curled in a smirk, âthough Iâd err closer to the time of being your professor,âÂ
Your head against his shoulder, you lean up for a kiss, as he blinks, before melting into your touch, as you pull back with a grin, âitâs ok if I initiate the kiss,â you chuckle when you catch sight of his pout, âdonât worry Iâll be giving you plenty after the ceremony â and maybe something even more than a kiss,âÂ
âIs that a promise?â And you tug him close, pressing another kiss to his lips â your lips were already smudged, so why hold back.Â
âAlways, for you.âÂ
Yuta knew it was for the best.Â
It had been a few weeks that he spent mourning his relationship â but he knew that it was the right choice for him. He had chased after you, it felt as if he was dogging your every step, waiting for you to notice him. And when you did, he still felt as he was your second choice â and that he would live in Getoâs shadow for the entirety of the relationship.Â
And he didnât want that. He didnât deserve that â and neither did you. More than anything, he wanted you to be happy â even if that wasnât with him.Â
It was for the best.Â
And the start to the new semester just proved that. He was starting his final year of his program, he had become the head of the student government (after Maki decided to step down to a more administrative role to focus on her degree), and he had even become a teacherâs assistant to one of his favorite professors. He didnât have time to focus on a relationship, not when he should be focusing on his future.Â
He entered the classroom that day, a little early on his professorâs request to set up the classroom with handouts, only to bump into someone, papers spilling from his hands.Â
âSorry, Iââ he leans down to pick up the dropped papers, before glancing up and finds himself looking at just thatâ
His future.Â
A few months later.Â
âYouâre late,â Suguru Geto remarks, as he shows you his watch on his wrist â the very one you had bought him for his birthday a few weeks before, âbut I should expect that by now, shouldnât I?â
You give a guilty grin, as you find your way to his side, sliding your hands up around his neck, âYes you should, especially when your girlfriend is a very important lecturer who was kept by all her students â jealous?âÂ
And he chuckles, his hair tied up in a half bun as usual, your fingers toying with a strand again, before heâs lacing with fingers with yours to press a kiss to the back of your hand, âVery â because your students are stealing my time with my very intellectual girlfriend,â and he leans down to press a kiss to the hollow of your throat, âit sounds like it was a success â I knew it would be,â he adds, âbut someone else wasnât so sure,âÂ
You roll your eyes playfully, âYes, yes, you were right â the students found my work interesting, or at least interesting enough not to fall asleep and ask questionsââÂ
âHigh praise,â and your lips curl into a smile, âWhat?âÂ
âI love you,â he grins back at you, a chuckle on his lips, as he leans down to capture them, his smile apparent against you, as he parts from you, a heat still present in the pit of your stomach, a need for him burning as it always was, âI love you so much, Suguru,âÂ
âI love you too, princess,â heâs rubbing his thumb back and forth against the length of your cheek, âGood thing too because otherwise, moving in together would be more than a little awkward,â and you pout, and heâs laughing before kissing you again and again, until heâs kissing your pout away with a languid kiss that has you melting into his grasp â breathless when he pulls away, lips utterly kiss ruined and red, âthey should be calling us into the viewing soon,â he bites his lip,and youâre nodding reluctantly if only considering whether if you could sway him for another few moments alone. Instead you settle for burying your face in the crook of his neck, lips brushing against his leaping pulse, âyouâre sure about moving to Kyoto? I had only chosen Kyoto to give you spaceââÂ
You cut him off with a glance up and a raised eyebrow, âYouâre the one who said I could choose, and I chose Kyoto because not only is it a good opportunity for you here to build your reputation as the department head, but because itâs a fresh start for us,âÂ
His fingers lace with yours, âWell if they keep asking you to lecture in Tokyo, you might develop a commute,â and you roll your eyes, before shrugging.Â
âI can handle it,â you squeeze his hand, âas long as I'm coming home to you.âÂ
âAnd a cat or a poodle,âand you light up, grinning even wider, âwe should ask if they allow pets,âÂ
âReally? We canââÂ
âI heard poodles are a good choice of pet,â and youâre leaning up to kiss him, arms wrapping around his neck, âI made an appointment for at an adoption center after this,âÂ
âMr. Geto?â a person comes out of the leasing office, âweâre ready for you both,âÂ
And you pull away, your fingers interlacing with yours and squeezing his hand, âAre you ready?âÂ
His lips curl in a smile, âI think we owe it to ourselves, donât we? Especially they agreed to take us for our viewing after you were late,âÂ
And you chuckle, as the two of you made your way inside, âI swear youâre going to leave without me one of these days if Iâm late enough,âÂ
âNo, Iâd never do that. Iâll always wait for you, sweetheart,â he holds the door open for you, pressing a kiss to the top of your head, âwe have all the time in the world after all.â And you grin at him as you walk past him, his fingers reaching into his pocket.Â
He had found out his answer to life â watching you greet and speak with the agent, before glancing back at him with a small smile and tilt of your head â his fingers toy with the ring box in his pocketâÂ
And now he just needed to know yours. Â
END.Â
Yutaâs own love story will be coming after Professor Gojoâs!Â
â§a/n: wow i'm still in disbelief i finished this series. this is my first series on tumblr, and i truly hope you all enjoyed. this part was wayyyy longer than i expected. but i hope i did the series justice.
⧠taglist: @hatsunemitskislobotomy, @difficultdomains, @diogodxlot, @that-goth-bisexual, @dazailover1900, @aliyalala @ashhlsstuff , @blue041803 , @mwtsxri , @bblgumfairy , @sukunasleftkneecap , @xo-evangeline , @fiannee , @teatreeoilll , @chalametet , @ryukaver , @d1gitalbathh , @saga3ious , @seventhcinema , @satosugucide , @your-l0nely-star , @sokkasmoon , @deegausserr , @hyookka , @oggsyy , @littlebitb , @higuchislut , @ti-mame , @itoshisins , @cerene-dipity , @onionsoop , @sinlillith , @izzythenaive , @lalacute03 , @rxndou , @c-themoon , @xxrag-d0llxx , @hqtoge , @sugarxlumps , @hopeluna , @actualdeemon , @enchantedpendant , @serendididy , @soulstealercat , @neuviloved , @simply-a-s1mp , @satorusmochis , @lalacute03
#sab [mlist]#sab series [prof suguru]#suguru geto x reader#suguru geto smut#geto suguru x reader#geto suguru fanfiction#suguru geto fanfiction#geto x reader#geto smut#jjk smut#jujutsu kaisen smut#jujutsu kaisen x reader#jjk x reader#suguru geto x you#suguru x reader
2K notes
·
View notes